Anne of the Island đ¸ | A Heartwarming Tale of Friendship, Love & Growth đż
Welcome to Storytime Haven. Today, weâre diving into L. M. Montgomeryâs beloved novel, Anne of the Island. Join Anne Shirley, as she embarks on her journey to university, facing new adventures, friendships, and self-discovery. Follow her as she navigates the ups and downs of life on the beautiful Prince Edward Island, all while keeping her imagination and dreams alive. Letâs get cozy and enjoy the next chapter in Anneâs life together. Chapter 1. The Shadow of Change. âHarvest is ended and summer is gone,â quoted Anne Shirley, gazing across the shorn fields dreamily. She and Diana Barry had been picking apples in the Green Gables orchard, but were now resting from their labors in a sunny corner, where airy fleets of thistledown drifted by on the wings of a wind that was still summer-sweet with the incense of ferns in the Haunted Wood. But everything in the landscape around them spoke of autumn. The sea was roaring hollowly in the distance, the fields were bare and sere, scarfed with golden rod, the brook valley below Green Gables overflowed with asters of ethereal purple, and the Lake of Shining Waters was blueâblueâblue; not the changeful blue of spring, nor the pale azure of summer, but a clear, steadfast, serene blue, as if the water were past all moods and tenses of emotion and had settled down to a tranquility unbroken by fickle dreams. âIt has been a nice summer,â said Diana, twisting the new ring on her left hand with a smile. âAnd Miss Lavendarâs wedding seemed to come as a sort of crown to it. I suppose Mr. and Mrs. Irving are on the Pacific coast now.â âIt seems to me they have been gone long enough to go around the world,â sighed Anne. âI canât believe it is only a week since they were married. Everything has changed. Miss Lavendar and Mr. and Mrs. Allan goneâhow lonely the manse looks with the shutters all closed! I went past it last night, and it made me feel as if everybody in it had died.â âWeâll never get another minister as nice as Mr. Allan,â said Diana, with gloomy conviction. âI suppose weâll have all kinds of supplies this winter, and half the Sundays no preaching at all. And you and Gilbert goneâit will be awfully dull.â âFred will be here,â insinuated Anne slyly. âWhen is Mrs. Lynde going to move up?â asked Diana, as if she had not heard Anneâs remark. âTomorrow. Iâm glad sheâs comingâbut it will be another change. Marilla and I cleared everything out of the spare room yesterday. Do you know, I hated to do it? Of course, it was sillyâbut it did seem as if we were committing sacrilege. That old spare room has always seemed like a shrine to me. When I was a child I thought it the most wonderful apartment in the world. You remember what a consuming desire I had to sleep in a spare room bedâbut not the Green Gables spare room. Oh, no, never there! It would have been too terribleâI couldnât have slept a wink from awe. I never _walked_ through that room when Marilla sent me in on an errandâno, indeed, I tiptoed through it and held my breath, as if I were in church, and felt relieved when I got out of it. The pictures of George Whitefield and the Duke of Wellington hung there, one on each side of the mirror, and frowned so sternly at me all the time I was in, especially if I dared peep in the mirror, which was the only one in the house that didnât twist my face a little. I always wondered how Marilla dared houseclean that room. And now itâs not only cleaned but stripped bare. George Whitefield and the Duke have been relegated to the upstairs hall. âSo passes the glory of this world,ââ concluded Anne, with a laugh in which there was a little note of regret. It is never pleasant to have our old shrines desecrated, even when we have outgrown them. âIâll be so lonesome when you go,â moaned Diana for the hundredth time. âAnd to think you go next week!â âBut weâre together still,â said Anne cheerily. âWe mustnât let next week rob us of this weekâs joy. I hate the thought of going myselfâhome and I are such good friends. Talk of being lonesome! Itâs I who should groan. _Youâll_ be here with any number of your old friendsâ_and_ Fred! While I shall be alone among strangers, not knowing a soul!â â_Except_ Gilbertâ_and_ Charlie Sloane,â said Diana, imitating Anneâs italics and slyness. âCharlie Sloane will be a great comfort, of course,â agreed Anne sarcastically; whereupon both those irresponsible damsels laughed. Diana knew exactly what Anne thought of Charlie Sloane; but, despite sundry confidential talks, she did not know just what Anne thought of Gilbert Blythe. To be sure, Anne herself did not know that. âThe boys may be boarding at the other end of Kingsport, for all I know,â Anne went on. âI am glad Iâm going to Redmond, and I am sure I shall like it after a while. But for the first few weeks I know I wonât. I shanât even have the comfort of looking forward to the weekend visit home, as I had when I went to Queenâs. Christmas will seem like a thousand years away.â âEverything is changingâor going to change,â said Diana sadly. âI have a feeling that things will never be the same again, Anne.â âWe have come to a parting of the ways, I suppose,â said Anne thoughtfully. âWe had to come to it. Do you think, Diana, that being grown-up is really as nice as we used to imagine it would be when we were children?â âI donât knowâthere are _some_ nice things about it,â answered Diana, again caressing her ring with that little smile which always had the effect of making Anne feel suddenly left out and inexperienced. âBut there are so many puzzling things, too. Sometimes I feel as if being grown-up just frightened meâand then I would give anything to be a little girl again.â âI suppose weâll get used to being grownup in time,â said Anne cheerfully. âThere wonât be so many unexpected things about it by and byâthough, after all, I fancy itâs the unexpected things that give spice to life. Weâre eighteen, Diana. In two more years weâll be twenty. When I was ten I thought twenty was a green old age. In no time youâll be a staid, middle-aged matron, and I shall be nice, old maid Aunt Anne, coming to visit you on vacations. Youâll always keep a corner for me, wonât you, Di darling? Not the spare room, of courseâold maids canât aspire to spare rooms, and I shall be as âumble as _Uriah Heep_, and quite content with a little over-the-porch or off-the-parlor cubby hole.â âWhat nonsense you do talk, Anne,â laughed Diana. âYouâll marry somebody splendid and handsome and richâand no spare room in Avonlea will be half gorgeous enough for youâand youâll turn up your nose at all the friends of your youth.â âThat would be a pity; my nose is quite nice, but I fear turning it up would spoil it,â said Anne, patting that shapely organ. âI havenât so many good features that I could afford to spoil those I have; so, even if I should marry the King of the Cannibal Islands, I promise you I wonât turn up my nose at you, Diana.â With another gay laugh the girls separated, Diana to return to Orchard Slope, Anne to walk to the Post Office. She found a letter awaiting her there, and when Gilbert Blythe overtook her on the bridge over the Lake of Shining Waters she was sparkling with the excitement of it. âPriscilla Grant is going to Redmond, too,â she exclaimed. âIsnât that splendid? I hoped she would, but she didnât think her father would consent. He has, however, and weâre to board together. I feel that I can face an army with bannersâor all the professors of Redmond in one fell phalanxâwith a chum like Priscilla by my side.â âI think weâll like Kingsport,â said Gilbert. âItâs a nice old burg, they tell me, and has the finest natural park in the world. Iâve heard that the scenery in it is magnificent. âI wonder if it will beâcan beâany more beautiful than this,â murmured Anne, looking around her with the loving, enraptured eyes of those to whom âhomeâ must always be the loveliest spot in the world, no matter what fairer lands may lie under alien stars. They were leaning on the bridge of the old pond, drinking deep of the enchantment of the dusk, just at the spot where Anne had climbed from her sinking Dory on the day Elaine floated down to Camelot. The fine, empurpling dye of sunset still stained the western skies, but the moon was rising and the water lay like a great, silver dream in her light. Remembrance wove a sweet and subtle spell over the two young creatures. âYou are very quiet, Anne,â said Gilbert at last. âIâm afraid to speak or move for fear all this wonderful beauty will vanish just like a broken silence,â breathed Anne. Gilbert suddenly laid his hand over the slender white one lying on the rail of the bridge. His hazel eyes deepened into darkness, his still boyish lips opened to say something of the dream and hope that thrilled his soul. But Anne snatched her hand away and turned quickly. The spell of the dusk was broken for her. âI must go home,â she exclaimed, with a rather overdone carelessness. âMarilla had a headache this afternoon, and Iâm sure the twins will be in some dreadful mischief by this time. I really shouldnât have stayed away so long.â She chattered ceaselessly and inconsequently until they reached the Green Gables lane. Poor Gilbert hardly had a chance to get a word in edgewise. Anne felt rather relieved when they parted. There had been a new, secret self-consciousness in her heart with regard to Gilbert, ever since that fleeting moment of revelation in the garden of Echo Lodge. Something alien had intruded into the old, perfect, school-day comradeshipâsomething that threatened to mar it. âI never felt glad to see Gilbert go before,â she thought, half-resentfully, half-sorrowfully, as she walked alone up the lane. âOur friendship will be spoiled if he goes on with this nonsense. It mustnât be spoiledâI wonât let it. Oh, _why_ canât boys be just sensible!â Anne had an uneasy doubt that it was not strictly âsensibleâ that she should still feel on her hand the warm pressure of Gilbertâs, as distinctly as she had felt it for the swift second his had rested there; and still less sensible that the sensation was far from being an unpleasant oneâvery different from that which had attended a similar demonstration on Charlie Sloaneâs part, when she had been sitting out a dance with him at a White Sands party three nights before. Anne shivered over the disagreeable recollection. But all problems connected with infatuated swains vanished from her mind when she entered the homely, unsentimental atmosphere of the Green Gables kitchen where an eight-year-old boy was crying grievously on the sofa. âWhat is the matter, Davy?â asked Anne, taking him up in her arms. âWhere are Marilla and Dora?â âMarillaâs putting Dora to bed,â sobbed Davy, âand Iâm crying ’cause Dora fell down the outside cellar steps, heels over head, and scraped all the skin off her nose, andââ âOh, well, donât cry about it, dear. Of course, you are sorry for her, but crying wonât help her any. Sheâll be all right tomorrow. Crying never helps any one, Davy-boy, andââ âI ainât crying ’cause Dora fell down cellar,â said Davy, cutting short Anneâs wellmeant preachment with increasing bitterness. âIâm crying, cause I wasnât there to see her fall. Iâm always missing some fun or other, seems to me.â âOh, Davy!â Anne choked back an unholy shriek of laughter. âWould you call it fun to see poor little Dora fall down the steps and get hurt?â âShe wasnât _much_ hurt,â said Davy, defiantly. ââCourse, if sheâd been killed Iâd have been real sorry, Anne. But the Keiths ainât so easy killed. Theyâre like the Blewetts, I guess. Herb Blewett fell off the hayloft last Wednesday, and rolled right down through the turnip chute into the box stall, where they had a fearful wild, cross horse, and rolled right under his heels. And still he got out alive, with only three bones broke. Mrs. Lynde says there are some folks you canât kill with a meat-axe. Is Mrs. Lynde coming here tomorrow, Anne?â âYes, Davy, and I hope youâll be always very nice and good to her.â âIâll be nice and good. But will she ever put me to bed at nights, Anne?â âPerhaps. Why?â ââCause,â said Davy very decidedly, âif she does I wonât say my prayers before her like I do before you, Anne.â âWhy not?â ââCause I donât think it would be nice to talk to God before strangers, Anne. Dora can say hers to Mrs. Lynde if she likes, but _I_ wonât. Iâll wait till sheâs gone and then say ’em. Wonât that be all right, Anne?â âYes, if you are sure you wonât forget to say them, Davy-boy.â âOh, I wonât forget, you bet. I think saying my prayers is great fun. But it wonât be as good fun saying them alone as saying them to you. I wish youâd stay home, Anne. I donât see what you want to go away and leave us for.â âI donât exactly _want_ to, Davy, but I feel I ought to go.â âIf you donât want to go you neednât. Youâre grown up. When _I_âm grown up Iâm not going to do one single thing I donât want to do, Anne.â âAll your life, Davy, youâll find yourself doing things you donât want to do.â âI wonât,â said Davy flatly. âCatch me! I have to do things I donât want to now ’cause you and Marillaâll send me to bed if I donât. But when I grow up you canât do that, and thereâll be nobody to tell me not to do things. Wonât I have the time! Say, Anne, Milty Boulter says his mother says youâre going to college to see if you can catch a man. Are you, Anne? I want to know.â For a second Anne burned with resentment. Then she laughed, reminding herself that Mrs. Boulterâs crude vulgarity of thought and speech could not harm her. âNo, Davy, Iâm not. Iâm going to study and grow and learn about many things.â âWhat things?â ââShoes and ships and sealing wax And cabbages and kings,ââ quoted Anne. âBut if you _did_ want to catch a man how would you go about it? I want to know,â persisted Davy, for whom the subject evidently possessed a certain fascination. âYouâd better ask Mrs. Boulter,â said Anne thoughtlessly. âI think itâs likely she knows more about the process than I do.â âI will, the next time I see her,â said Davy gravely. âDavy! If you do!â cried Anne, realizing her mistake. âBut you just told me to,â protested Davy aggrieved. âItâs time you went to bed,â decreed Anne, by way of getting out of the scrape. After Davy had gone to bed Anne wandered down to Victoria Island and sat there alone, curtained with fine-spun, moonlit gloom, while the water laughed around her in a duet of brook and wind. Anne had always loved that brook. Many a dream had she spun over its sparkling water in days gone by. She forgot lovelorn youths, and the cayenne speeches of malicious neighbors, and all the problems of her girlish existence. In imagination she sailed over storied seas that wash the distant shining shores of âfaery lands forlorn,â where lost Atlantis and Elysium lie, with the evening star for pilot, to the land of Heartâs Desire. And she was richer in those dreams than in realities; for things seen pass away, but the things that are unseen are eternal. Chapter 2. Garlands of Autumn. The following week sped swiftly, crowded with innumerable âlast things,â as Anne called them. Good-bye calls had to be made and received, being pleasant or otherwise, according to whether callers and called-upon were heartily in sympathy with Anneâs hopes, or thought she was too much puffed-up over going to college and that it was their duty to âtake her down a peg or two.â The A.V.I.S. gave a farewell party in honor of Anne and Gilbert one evening at the home of Josie Pye, choosing that place, partly because Mr. Pyeâs house was large and convenient, partly because it was strongly suspected that the Pye girls would have nothing to do with the affair if their offer of the house for the party was not accepted. It was a very pleasant little time, for the Pye girls were gracious, and said and did nothing to mar the harmony of the occasionâwhich was not according to their wont. Josie was unusually amiableâso much so that she even remarked condescendingly to Anne, âYour new dress is rather becoming to you, Anne. Really, you look _almost pretty_ in it.â âHow kind of you to say so,â responded Anne, with dancing eyes. Her sense of humor was developing, and the speeches that would have hurt her at fourteen were becoming merely food for amusement now. Josie suspected that Anne was laughing at her behind those wicked eyes; but she contented herself with whispering to Gertie, as they went downstairs, that Anne Shirley would put on more airs than ever now that she was going to collegeâyouâd see! All the âold crowdâ was there, full of mirth and zest and youthful lightheartedness. Diana Barry, rosy and dimpled, shadowed by the faithful Fred; Jane Andrews, neat and sensible and plain; Ruby Gillis, looking her handsomest and brightest in a cream silk blouse, with red geraniums in her golden hair; Gilbert Blythe and Charlie Sloane, both trying to keep as near the elusive Anne as possible; Carrie Sloane, looking pale and melancholy because, so it was reported, her father would not allow Oliver Kimball to come near the place; Moody Spurgeon MacPherson, whose round face and objectionable ears were as round and objectionable as ever; and Billy Andrews, who sat in a corner all the evening, chuckled when any one spoke to him, and watched Anne Shirley with a grin of pleasure on his broad, freckled countenance. Anne had known beforehand of the party, but she had not known that she and Gilbert were, as the founders of the Society, to be presented with a very complimentary âaddressâ and âtokens of respectââin her case a volume of Shakespeareâs plays, in Gilbertâs a fountain pen. She was so taken by surprise and pleased by the nice things said in the address, read in Moody Spurgeonâs most solemn and ministerial tones, that the tears quite drowned the sparkle of her big gray eyes. She had worked hard and faithfully for the A.V.I.S., and it warmed the cockles of her heart that the members appreciated her efforts so sincerely. And they were all so nice and friendly and jollyâeven the Pye girls had their merits; at that moment Anne loved all the world. She enjoyed the evening tremendously, but the end of it rather spoiled all. Gilbert again made the mistake of saying something sentimental to her as they ate their supper on the moonlit verandah; and Anne, to punish him, was gracious to Charlie Sloane and allowed the latter to walk home with her. She found, however, that revenge hurts nobody quite so much as the one who tries to inflict it. Gilbert walked airily off with Ruby Gillis, and Anne could hear them laughing and talking gaily as they loitered along in the still, crisp autumn air. They were evidently having the best of good times, while she was horribly bored by Charlie Sloane, who talked unbrokenly on, and never, even by accident, said one thing that was worth listening to. Anne gave an occasional absent âyesâ or âno,â and thought how beautiful Ruby had looked that night, how very goggly Charlieâs eyes were in the moonlightâworse even than by daylightâand that the world, somehow, wasnât quite such a nice place as she had believed it to be earlier in the evening. âIâm just tired outâthat is what is the matter with me,â she said, when she thankfully found herself alone in her own room. And she honestly believed it was. But a certain little gush of joy, as from some secret, unknown spring, bubbled up in her heart the next evening, when she saw Gilbert striding down through the Haunted Wood and crossing the old log bridge with that firm, quick step of his. So Gilbert was not going to spend this last evening with Ruby Gillis after all! âYou look tired, Anne,â he said. âI am tired, and, worse than that, Iâm disgruntled. Iâm tired because Iâve been packing my trunk and sewing all day. But Iâm disgruntled because six women have been here to say good-bye to me, and every one of the six managed to say something that seemed to take the color right out of life and leave it as gray and dismal and cheerless as a November morning.â âSpiteful old cats!â was Gilbertâs elegant comment. âOh, no, they werenât,â said Anne seriously. âThat is just the trouble. If they had been spiteful cats I wouldnât have minded them. But they are all nice, kind, motherly souls, who like me and whom I like, and that is why what they said, or hinted, had such undue weight with me. They let me see they thought I was crazy going to Redmond and trying to take a B.A., and ever since Iâve been wondering if I am. Mrs. Peter Sloane sighed and said she hoped my strength would hold out till I got through; and at once I saw myself a hopeless victim of nervous prostration at the end of my third year; Mrs. Eben Wright said it must cost an awful lot to put in four years at Redmond; and I felt all over me that it was unpardonable of me to squander Marillaâs money and my own on such a folly. Mrs. Jasper Bell said she hoped I wouldnât let college spoil me, as it did some people; and I felt in my bones that the end of my four Redmond years would see me a most insufferable creature, thinking I knew it all, and looking down on everything and everybody in Avonlea; Mrs. Elisha Wright said she understood that Redmond girls, especially those who belonged to Kingsport, were âdreadful dressy and stuck-up,â and she guessed I wouldnât feel much at home among them; and I saw myself, a snubbed, dowdy, humiliated country girl, shuffling through Redmondâs classic halls in coppertoned boots.â Anne ended with a laugh and a sigh commingled. With her sensitive nature all disapproval had weight, even the disapproval of those for whose opinions she had scant respect. For the time being life was savorless, and ambition had gone out like a snuffed candle. âYou surely donât care for what they said,â protested Gilbert. âYou know exactly how narrow their outlook on life is, excellent creatures though they are. To do anything _they_ have never done is anathema maranatha. You are the first Avonlea girl who has ever gone to college; and you know that all pioneers are considered to be afflicted with moonstruck madness.â âOh, I know. But _feeling_ is so different from _knowing_. My common sense tells me all you can say, but there are times when common sense has no power over me. Common nonsense takes possession of my soul. Really, after Mrs. Elisha went away I hardly had the heart to finish packing. âYouâre just tired, Anne. Come, forget it all and take a walk with meâa ramble back through the woods beyond the marsh. There should be something there I want to show you.â âShould be! Donât you know if it is there?â âNo. I only know it should be, from something I saw there in spring. Come on. Weâll pretend we are two children again and weâll go the way of the wind.â They started gaily off. Anne, remembering the unpleasantness of the preceding evening, was very nice to Gilbert; and Gilbert, who was learning wisdom, took care to be nothing save the schoolboy comrade again. Mrs. Lynde and Marilla watched them from the kitchen window. âThatâll be a match some day,â Mrs. Lynde said approvingly. Marilla winced slightly. In her heart she hoped it would, but it went against her grain to hear the matter spoken of in Mrs. Lyndeâs gossipy matter-of-fact way. âTheyâre only children yet,â she said shortly. Mrs. Lynde laughed good-naturedly. âAnne is eighteen; I was married when I was that age. We old folks, Marilla, are too much given to thinking children never grow up, thatâs what. Anne is a young woman and Gilbertâs a man, and he worships the ground she walks on, as any one can see. Heâs a fine fellow, and Anne canât do better. I hope she wonât get any romantic nonsense into her head at Redmond. I donât approve of them coeducational places and never did, thatâs what. I donât believe,â concluded Mrs. Lynde solemnly, âthat the students at such colleges ever do much else than flirt.â âThey must study a little,â said Marilla, with a smile. âPrecious little,â sniffed Mrs. Rachel. âHowever, I think Anne will. She never was flirtatious. But she doesnât appreciate Gilbert at his full value, thatâs what. Oh, I know girls! Charlie Sloane is wild about her, too, but Iâd never advise her to marry a Sloane. The Sloanes are good, honest, respectable people, of course. But when allâs said and done, theyâre _Sloanes_.â Marilla nodded. To an outsider, the statement that Sloanes were Sloanes might not be very illuminating, but she understood. Every village has such a family; good, honest, respectable people they may be, but _Sloanes_ they are and must ever remain, though they speak with the tongues of men and angels. Gilbert and Anne, happily unconscious that their future was thus being settled by Mrs. Rachel, were sauntering through the shadows of the Haunted Wood. Beyond, the harvest hills were basking in an amber sunset radiance, under a pale, aerial sky of rose and blue. The distant spruce groves were burnished bronze, and their long shadows barred the upland meadows. But around them a little wind sang among the fir tassels, and in it there was the note of autumn. âThis wood really is haunted nowâby old memories,â said Anne, stooping to gather a spray of ferns, bleached to waxen whiteness by frost. âIt seems to me that the little girls Diana and I used to be play here still, and sit by the Dryadâs Bubble in the twilights, trysting with the ghosts. Do you know, I can never go up this path in the dusk without feeling a bit of the old fright and shiver? There was one especially horrifying phantom which we createdâthe ghost of the murdered child that crept up behind you and laid cold fingers on yours. I confess that, to this day, I cannot help fancying its little, furtive footsteps behind me when I come here after nightfall. Iâm not afraid of the White Lady or the headless man or the skeletons, but I wish I had never imagined that babyâs ghost into existence. How angry Marilla and Mrs. Barry were over that affair,â concluded Anne, with reminiscent laughter. The woods around the head of the marsh were full of purple vistas, threaded with gossamers. Past a dour plantation of gnarled spruces and a maple-fringed, sun-warm valley they found the âsomethingâ Gilbert was looking for. âAh, here it is,â he said with satisfaction. âAn apple treeâand away back here!â exclaimed Anne delightedly. âYes, a veritable apple-bearing apple tree, too, here in the very midst of pines and beeches, a mile away from any orchard. I was here one day last spring and found it, all white with blossom. So I resolved Iâd come again in the fall and see if it had been apples. See, itâs loaded. They look good, tooâtawny as russets but with a dusky red cheek. Most wild seedlings are green and uninviting.â âI suppose it sprang years ago from some chance-sown seed,â said Anne dreamily. âAnd how it has grown and flourished and held its own here all alone among aliens, the brave determined thing!â âHereâs a fallen tree with a cushion of moss. Sit down, Anneâit will serve for a woodland throne. Iâll climb for some apples. They all grow highâthe tree had to reach up to the sunlight.â The apples proved to be delicious. Under the tawny skin was a white, white flesh, faintly veined with red; and, besides their own proper apple taste, they had a certain wild, delightful tang no orchard-grown apple ever possessed. âThe fatal apple of Eden couldnât have had a rarer flavor,â commented Anne. âBut itâs time we were going home. See, it was twilight three minutes ago and now itâs moonlight. What a pity we couldnât have caught the moment of transformation. But such moments never are caught, I suppose.â âLetâs go back around the marsh and home by way of Loverâs Lane. Do you feel as disgruntled now as when you started out, Anne?â âNot I. Those apples have been as manna to a hungry soul. I feel that I shall love Redmond and have a splendid four years there.â âAnd after those four yearsâwhat?â âOh, thereâs another bend in the road at their end,â answered Anne lightly. âIâve no idea what may be around itâI donât want to have. Itâs nicer not to know.â Loverâs Lane was a dear place that night, still and mysteriously dim in the pale radiance of the moonlight. They loitered through it in a pleasant chummy silence, neither caring to talk. âIf Gilbert were always as he has been this evening how nice and simple everything would be,â reflected Anne. Gilbert was looking at Anne, as she walked along. In her light dress, with her slender delicacy, she made him think of a white iris. âI wonder if I can ever make her care for me,â he thought, with a pang of self-distrust. Chapter 3. Greeting and Farewell. Charlie Sloane, Gilbert Blythe and Anne Shirley left Avonlea the following Monday morning. Anne had hoped for a fine day. Diana was to drive her to the station and they wanted this, their last drive together for some time, to be a pleasant one. But when Anne went to bed Sunday night the east wind was moaning around Green Gables with an ominous prophecy which was fulfilled in the morning. Anne awoke to find raindrops pattering against her window and shadowing the pondâs gray surface with widening rings; hills and sea were hidden in mist, and the whole world seemed dim and dreary. Anne dressed in the cheerless gray dawn, for an early start was necessary to catch the boat train; she struggled against the tears that _would_ well up in her eyes in spite of herself. She was leaving the home that was so dear to her, and something told her that she was leaving it forever, save as a holiday refuge. Things would never be the same again; coming back for vacations would not be living there. And oh, how dear and beloved everything wasâthat little white porch room, sacred to the dreams of girlhood, the old Snow Queen at the window, the brook in the hollow, the Dryadâs Bubble, the Haunted Woods, and Loverâs Laneâall the thousand and one dear spots where memories of the old years bided. Could she ever be really happy anywhere else? Breakfast at Green Gables that morning was a rather doleful meal. Davy, for the first time in his life probably, could not eat, but blubbered shamelessly over his porridge. Nobody else seemed to have much appetite, save Dora, who tucked away her rations comfortably. Dora, like the immortal and most prudent Charlotte, who âwent on cutting bread and butterâ when her frenzied loverâs body had been carried past on a shutter, was one of those fortunate creatures who are seldom disturbed by anything. Even at eight it took a great deal to ruffle Doraâs placidity. She was sorry Anne was going away, of course, but was that any reason why she should fail to appreciate a poached egg on toast? Not at all. And, seeing that Davy could not eat his, Dora ate it for him. Promptly on time Diana appeared with horse and buggy, her rosy face glowing above her raincoat. The good-byes had to be said then somehow. Mrs. Lynde came in from her quarters to give Anne a hearty embrace and warn her to be careful of her health, whatever she did. Marilla, brusque and tearless, pecked Anneâs cheek and said she supposed theyâd hear from her when she got settled. A casual observer might have concluded that Anneâs going mattered very little to herâunless said observer had happened to get a good look in her eyes. Dora kissed Anne primly and squeezed out two decorous little tears; but Davy, who had been crying on the back porch step ever since they rose from the table, refused to say good-bye at all. When he saw Anne coming towards him he sprang to his feet, bolted up the back stairs, and hid in a clothes closet, out of which he would not come. His muffled howls were the last sounds Anne heard as she left Green Gables. It rained heavily all the way to Bright River, to which station they had to go, since the branch line train from Carmody did not connect with the boat train. Charlie and Gilbert were on the station platform when they reached it, and the train was whistling. Anne had just time to get her ticket and trunk check, say a hurried farewell to Diana, and hasten on board. She wished she were going back with Diana to Avonlea; she knew she was going to die of homesickness. And oh, if only that dismal rain would stop pouring down as if the whole world were weeping over summer vanished and joys departed! Even Gilbertâs presence brought her no comfort, for Charlie Sloane was there, too, and Sloanishness could be tolerated only in fine weather. It was absolutely insufferable in rain. But when the boat steamed out of Charlottetown harbor things took a turn for the better. The rain ceased and the sun began to burst out goldenly now and again between the rents in the clouds, burnishing the gray seas with copper-hued radiance, and lighting up the mists that curtained the Islandâs red shores with gleams of gold foretokening a fine day after all. Besides, Charlie Sloane promptly became so seasick that he had to go below, and Anne and Gilbert were left alone on deck. âI am very glad that all the Sloanes get seasick as soon as they go on water,â thought Anne mercilessly. âI am sure I couldnât take my farewell look at the âould sodâ with Charlie standing there pretending to look sentimentally at it, too.â âWell, weâre off,â remarked Gilbert unsentimentally. âYes, I feel like Byronâs âChilde Haroldââonly it isnât really my ânative shoreâ that Iâm watching,â said Anne, winking her gray eyes vigorously. âNova Scotia is that, I suppose. But oneâs native shore is the land one loves the best, and thatâs good old P.E.I. for me. I canât believe I didnât always live here. Those eleven years before I came seem like a bad dream. Itâs seven years since I crossed on this boatâthe evening Mrs. Spencer brought me over from Hopetown. I can see myself, in that dreadful old wincey dress and faded sailor hat, exploring decks and cabins with enraptured curiosity. It was a fine evening; and how those red Island shores did gleam in the sunshine. Now Iâm crossing the strait again. Oh, Gilbert, I do hope Iâll like Redmond and Kingsport, but Iâm sure I wonât!â âWhereâs all your philosophy gone, Anne?â âItâs all submerged under a great, swamping wave of loneliness and homesickness. Iâve longed for three years to go to Redmondâand now Iâm goingâand I wish I werenât! Never mind! I shall be cheerful and philosophical again after I have just one good cry. I _must_ have that, âas a wentââand Iâll have to wait until I get into my boardinghouse bed tonight, wherever it may be, before I can have it. Then Anne will be herself again. I wonder if Davy has come out of the closet yet.â It was nine that night when their train reached Kingsport, and they found themselves in the blue-white glare of the crowded station. Anne felt horribly bewildered, but a moment later she was seized by Priscilla Grant, who had come to Kingsport on Saturday. âHere you are, beloved! And I suppose youâre as tired as I was when I got here Saturday night.â âTired! Priscilla, donât talk of it. Iâm tired, and green, and provincial, and only about ten years old. For pityâs sake take your poor, broken-down chum to some place where she can hear herself think. âIâll take you right up to our boardinghouse. Iâve a cab ready outside.â âItâs such a blessing youâre here, Prissy. If you werenât I think I should just sit down on my suitcase, here and now, and weep bitter tears. What a comfort one familiar face is in a howling wilderness of strangers!â âIs that Gilbert Blythe over there, Anne? How he has grown up this past year! He was only a schoolboy when I taught in Carmody. And of course thatâs Charlie Sloane. _He_ hasnât changedâcouldnât! He looked just like that when he was born, and heâll look like that when heâs eighty. This way, dear. Weâll be home in twenty minutes.â âHome!â groaned Anne. âYou mean weâll be in some horrible boardinghouse, in a still more horrible hall bedroom, looking out on a dingy back yard.â âIt isnât a horrible boardinghouse, Anne-girl. Hereâs our cab. Hop inâthe driver will get your trunk. Oh, yes, the boardinghouseâitâs really a very nice place of its kind, as youâll admit tomorrow morning when a good nightâs sleep has turned your blues rosy pink. Itâs a big, old-fashioned, gray stone house on St. John Street, just a nice little constitutional from Redmond. It used to be the âresidenceâ of great folk, but fashion has deserted St. John Street and its houses only dream now of better days. Theyâre so big that people living in them have to take boarders just to fill up. At least, that is the reason our landladies are very anxious to impress on us. Theyâre delicious, Anneâour landladies, I mean.â âHow many are there?â âTwo. Miss Hannah Harvey and Miss Ada Harvey. They were born twins about fifty years ago.â âI canât get away from twins, it seems,â smiled Anne. âWherever I go they confront me.â âOh, theyâre not twins now, dear. After they reached the age of thirty they never were twins again. Miss Hannah has grown old, not too gracefully, and Miss Ada has stayed thirty, less gracefully still. I donât know whether Miss Hannah can smile or not; Iâve never caught her at it so far, but Miss Ada smiles all the time and thatâs worse. However, theyâre nice, kind souls, and they take two boarders every year because Miss Hannahâs economical soul cannot bear to âwaste room spaceâânot because they need to or have to, as Miss Ada has told me seven times since Saturday night. As for our rooms, I admit they are hall bedrooms, and mine does look out on the back yard. Your room is a front one and looks out on Old St. Johnâs graveyard, which is just across the street.â âThat sounds gruesome,â shivered Anne. âI think Iâd rather have the back yard view.â âOh, no, you wouldnât. Wait and see. Old St. Johnâs is a darling place. Itâs been a graveyard so long that itâs ceased to be one and has become one of the sights of Kingsport. I was all through it yesterday for a pleasure exertion. Thereâs a big stone wall and a row of enormous trees all around it, and rows of trees all through it, and the queerest old tombstones, with the queerest and quaintest inscriptions. Youâll go there to study, Anne, see if you donât. Of course, nobody is ever buried there now. But a few years ago they put up a beautiful monument to the memory of Nova Scotian soldiers who fell in the Crimean War. It is just opposite the entrance gates and thereâs âscope for imaginationâ in it, as you used to say. Hereâs your trunk at lastâand the boys coming to say good night. Must I really shake hands with Charlie Sloane, Anne? His hands are always so cold and fishy-feeling. We must ask them to call occasionally. Miss Hannah gravely told me we could have âyoung gentlemen callersâ two evenings in the week, if they went away at a reasonable hour; and Miss Ada asked me, smiling, please to be sure they didnât sit on her beautiful cushions. I promised to see to it; but goodness knows where else they _can_ sit, unless they sit on the floor, for there are cushions on _everything_. Miss Ada even has an elaborate Battenburg one on top of the piano.â Anne was laughing by this time. Priscillaâs gay chatter had the intended effect of cheering her up; homesickness vanished for the time being, and did not even return in full force when she finally found herself alone in her little bedroom. She went to her window and looked out. The street below was dim and quiet. Across it the moon was shining above the trees in Old St. Johnâs, just behind the great dark head of the lion on the monument. Anne wondered if it could have been only that morning that she had left Green Gables. She had the sense of a long passage of time which one day of change and travel gives. âI suppose that very moon is looking down on Green Gables now,â she mused. âBut I wonât think about itâthat way homesickness lies. Iâm not even going to have my good cry. Iâll put that off to a more convenient season, and just now Iâll go calmly and sensibly to bed and to sleep.â Chapter 4. Aprilâs Lady. Kingsport is a quaint old town, hearking back to early Colonial days, and wrapped in its ancient atmosphere, as some fine old dame in garments fashioned like those of her youth. Here and there it sprouts out into modernity, but at heart it is still unspoiled; it is full of curious relics, and haloed by the romance of many legends of the past. Once it was a mere frontier station on the fringe of the wilderness, and those were the days when Indians kept life from being monotonous to the settlers. Then it grew to be a bone of contention between the British and the French, being occupied now by the one and now by the other, emerging from each occupation with some fresh scar of battling nations branded on it. It has in its park a martello tower, autographed all over by tourists, a dismantled old French fort on the hills beyond the town, and several antiquated cannon in its public squares. It has other historic spots also, which may be hunted out by the curious, and none is more quaint and delightful than Old St. Johnâs Cemetery at the very core of the town, with streets of quiet, old-time houses on two sides, and busy, bustling, modern thoroughfares on the others. Every citizen of Kingsport feels a thrill of possessive pride in Old St. Johnâs, for, if he be of any pretensions at all, he has an ancestor buried there, with a queer, crooked slab at his head, or else sprawling protectively over the grave, on which all the main facts of his history are recorded. For the most part no great art or skill was lavished on those old tombstones. The larger number are of roughly chiselled brown or gray native stone, and only in a few cases is there any attempt at ornamentation. Some are adorned with skull and cross-bones, and this grizzly decoration is frequently coupled with a cherubâs head. Many are prostrate and in ruins. Into almost all Timeâs tooth has been gnawing, until some inscriptions have been completely effaced, and others can only be deciphered with difficulty. The graveyard is very full and very bowery, for it is surrounded and intersected by rows of elms and willows, beneath whose shade the sleepers must lie very dreamlessly, forever crooned to by the winds and leaves over them, and quite undisturbed by the clamor of traffic just beyond. Anne took the first of many rambles in Old St. Johnâs the next afternoon. She and Priscilla had gone to Redmond in the forenoon and registered as students, after which there was nothing more to do that day. The girls gladly made their escape, for it was not exhilarating to be surrounded by crowds of strangers, most of whom had a rather alien appearance, as if not quite sure where they belonged. The âfreshettesâ stood about in detached groups of two or three, looking askance at each other; the âfreshies,â wiser in their day and generation, had banded themselves together on the big staircase of the entrance hall, where they were shouting out glees with all the vigor of youthful lungs, as a species of defiance to their traditional enemies, the Sophomores, a few of whom were prowling loftily about, looking properly disdainful of the âunlicked cubsâ on the stairs. Gilbert and Charlie were nowhere to be seen. âLittle did I think the day would ever come when Iâd be glad of the sight of a Sloane,â said Priscilla, as they crossed the campus, âbut Iâd welcome Charlieâs goggle eyes almost ecstatically. At least, theyâd be familiar eyes.â âOh,â sighed Anne. âI canât describe how I felt when I was standing there, waiting my turn to be registeredâas insignificant as the teeniest drop in a most enormous bucket. Itâs bad enough to feel insignificant, but itâs unbearable to have it grained into your soul that you will never, can never, be anything but insignificant, and that is how I did feelâas if I were invisible to the naked eye and some of those Sophs might step on me. I knew I would go down to my grave unwept, unhonored and unsung.â âWait till next year,â comforted Priscilla. âThen weâll be able to look as bored and sophisticated as any Sophomore of them all. No doubt it is rather dreadful to feel insignificant; but I think itâs better than to feel as big and awkward as I didâas if I were sprawled all over Redmond. Thatâs how I feltâI suppose because I was a good two inches taller than any one else in the crowd. I wasnât afraid a Soph might walk over me; I was afraid theyâd take me for an elephant, or an overgrown sample of a potato-fed Islander.â âI suppose the trouble is we canât forgive big Redmond for not being little Queenâs,â said Anne, gathering about her the shreds of her old cheerful philosophy to cover her nakedness of spirit. âWhen we left Queenâs we knew everybody and had a place of our own. I suppose we have been unconsciously expecting to take life up at Redmond just where we left off at Queenâs, and now we feel as if the ground had slipped from under our feet. Iâm thankful that neither Mrs. Lynde nor Mrs. Elisha Wright know, or ever will know, my state of mind at present. They would exult in saying âI told you so,â and be convinced it was the beginning of the end. Whereas it is just the end of the beginning.â âExactly. That sounds more Anneish. In a little while weâll be acclimated and acquainted, and all will be well. Anne, did you notice the girl who stood alone just outside the door of the coedsâ dressing room all the morningâthe pretty one with the brown eyes and crooked mouth?â âYes, I did. I noticed her particularly because she seemed the only creature there who _looked_ as lonely and friendless as I _felt_. I had _you_, but she had no one.â âI think she felt pretty all-by-herselfish, too. Several times I saw her make a motion as if to cross over to us, but she never did itâtoo shy, I suppose. I wished she would come. If I hadnât felt so much like the aforesaid elephant Iâd have gone to her. But I couldnât lumber across that big hall with all those boys howling on the stairs. She was the prettiest freshette I saw today, but probably favor is deceitful and even beauty is vain on your first day at Redmond,â concluded Priscilla with a laugh. âIâm going across to Old St. Johnâs after lunch,â said Anne. âI donât know that a graveyard is a very good place to go to get cheered up, but it seems the only get-at-able place where there are trees, and trees I must have. Iâll sit on one of those old slabs and shut my eyes and imagine Iâm in the Avonlea woods.â Anne did not do that, however, for she found enough of interest in Old St. Johnâs to keep her eyes wide open. They went in by the entrance gates, past the simple, massive, stone arch surmounted by the great lion of England. ââAnd on Inkerman yet the wild bramble is gory, And those bleak heights henceforth shall be famous in story,ââ quoted Anne, looking at it with a thrill. They found themselves in a dim, cool, green place where winds were fond of purring. Up and down the long grassy aisles they wandered, reading the quaint, voluminous epitaphs, carved in an age that had more leisure than our own. ââHere lieth the body of Albert Crawford, Esq.,ââ read Anne from a worn, gray slab, ââfor many years Keeper of His Majestyâs Ordnance at Kingsport. He served in the army till the peace of 1763, when he retired from bad health. He was a brave officer, the best of husbands, the best of fathers, the best of friends. He died October 29th, 1792, aged 84 years.â Thereâs an epitaph for you, Prissy. There is certainly some âscope for imaginationâ in it. How full such a life must have been of adventure! And as for his personal qualities, Iâm sure human eulogy couldnât go further. I wonder if they told him he was all those best things while he was alive.â âHereâs another,â said Priscilla. âListenâ âTo the memory of Alexander Ross, who died on the 22nd of September, 1840, aged 43 years. This is raised as a tribute of affection by one whom he served so faithfully for 27 years that he was regarded as a friend, deserving the fullest confidence and attachment.ââ âA very good epitaph,â commented Anne thoughtfully. âI wouldnât wish a better. We are all servants of some sort, and if the fact that we are faithful can be truthfully inscribed on our tombstones nothing more need be added. Hereâs a sorrowful little gray stone, Prissyââto the memory of a favorite child.â And here is another âerected to the memory of one who is buried elsewhere.â I wonder where that unknown grave is. Really, Pris, the graveyards of today will never be as interesting as this. You were rightâI shall come here often. I love it already. I see weâre not alone hereâthereâs a girl down at the end of this avenue.â âYes, and I believe itâs the very girl we saw at Redmond this morning. Iâve been watching her for five minutes. She has started to come up the avenue exactly half a dozen times, and half a dozen times has she turned and gone back. Either sheâs dreadfully shy or she has got something on her conscience. Letâs go and meet her. Itâs easier to get acquainted in a graveyard than at Redmond, I believe.â They walked down the long grassy arcade towards the stranger, who was sitting on a gray slab under an enormous willow. She was certainly very pretty, with a vivid, irregular, bewitching type of prettiness. There was a gloss as of brown nuts on her satin-smooth hair and a soft, ripe glow on her round cheeks. Her eyes were big and brown and velvety, under oddly-pointed black brows, and her crooked mouth was rose-red. She wore a smart brown suit, with two very modish little shoes peeping from beneath it; and her hat of dull pink straw, wreathed with golden-brown poppies, had the indefinable, unmistakable air which pertains to the âcreationâ of an artist in millinery. Priscilla had a sudden stinging consciousness that her own hat had been trimmed by her village store milliner, and Anne wondered uncomfortably if the blouse she had made herself, and which Mrs. Lynde had fitted, looked _very_ countrified and home-made besides the strangerâs smart attire. For a moment both girls felt like turning back. But they had already stopped and turned towards the gray slab. It was too late to retreat, for the brown-eyed girl had evidently concluded that they were coming to speak to her. Instantly she sprang up and came forward with outstretched hand and a gay, friendly smile in which there seemed not a shadow of either shyness or burdened conscience. âOh, I want to know who you two girls are,â she exclaimed eagerly. âIâve been _dying_ to know. I saw you at Redmond this morning. Say, wasnât it _awful_ there? For the time I wished I had stayed home and got married.â Anne and Priscilla both broke into unconstrained laughter at this unexpected conclusion. The brown-eyed girl laughed, too. âI really did. I _could_ have, you know. Come, letâs all sit down on this gravestone and get acquainted. It wonât be hard. I know weâre going to adore each otherâI knew it as soon as I saw you at Redmond this morning. I wanted so much to go right over and hug you both.â âWhy didnât you?â asked Priscilla. âBecause I simply couldnât make up my mind to do it. I never can make up my mind about anything myselfâIâm always afflicted with indecision. Just as soon as I decide to do something I feel in my bones that another course would be the correct one. Itâs a dreadful misfortune, but I was born that way, and there is no use in blaming me for it, as some people do. So I couldnât make up my mind to go and speak to you, much as I wanted to.â âWe thought you were too shy,â said Anne. âNo, no, dear. Shyness isnât among the many failingsâor virtuesâof Philippa GordonâPhil for short. Do call me Phil right off. Now, what are your handles?â âSheâs Priscilla Grant,â said Anne, pointing. âAnd _sheâs_ Anne Shirley,â said Priscilla, pointing in turn. âAnd weâre from the Island,â said both together. âI hail from Bolingbroke, Nova Scotia,â said Philippa. âBolingbroke!â exclaimed Anne. âWhy, that is where I was born.â âDo you really mean it? Why, that makes you a Bluenose after all.â âNo, it doesnât,â retorted Anne. âWasnât it Dan OâConnell who said that if a man was born in a stable it didnât make him a horse? Iâm Island to the core.â âWell, Iâm glad you were born in Bolingbroke anyway. It makes us kind of neighbors, doesnât it? And I like that, because when I tell you secrets it wonât be as if I were telling them to a stranger. I have to tell them. I canât keep secretsâitâs no use to try. Thatâs my worst failingâthat, and indecision, as aforesaid. Would you believe it?âit took me half an hour to decide which hat to wear when I was coming hereâ_here_, to a graveyard! At first I inclined to my brown one with the feather; but as soon as I put it on I thought this pink one with the floppy brim would be more becoming. When I got _it_ pinned in place I liked the brown one better. At last I put them close together on the bed, shut my eyes, and jabbed with a hat pin. The pin speared the pink one, so I put it on. It is becoming, isnât it? Tell me, what do you think of my looks?â At this naive demand, made in a perfectly serious tone, Priscilla laughed again. But Anne said, impulsively squeezing Philippaâs hand, âWe thought this morning that you were the prettiest girl we saw at Redmond.â Philippaâs crooked mouth flashed into a bewitching, crooked smile over very white little teeth. âI thought that myself,â was her next astounding statement, âbut I wanted some one elseâs opinion to bolster mine up. I canât decide even on my own appearance. Just as soon as Iâve decided that Iâm pretty I begin to feel miserably that Iâm not. Besides, have a horrible old great-aunt who is always saying to me, with a mournful sigh, âYou were such a pretty baby. Itâs strange how children change when they grow up.â I adore aunts, but I detest great-aunts. Please tell me quite often that I am pretty, if you donât mind. I feel so much more comfortable when I can believe Iâm pretty. And Iâll be just as obliging to you if you want me toâI _can_ be, with a clear conscience.â âThanks,â laughed Anne, âbut Priscilla and I are so firmly convinced of our own good looks that we donât need any assurance about them, so you neednât trouble.â âOh, youâre laughing at me. I know you think Iâm abominably vain, but Iâm not. There really isnât one spark of vanity in me. And Iâm never a bit grudging about paying compliments to other girls when they deserve them. Iâm so glad I know you folks. I came up on Saturday and Iâve nearly died of homesickness ever since. Itâs a horrible feeling, isnât it? In Bolingbroke Iâm an important personage, and in Kingsport Iâm just nobody! There were times when I could feel my soul turning a delicate blue. Where do you hang out?â âThirty-eight St. Johnâs Street.â âBetter and better. Why, Iâm just around the corner on Wallace Street. I donât like my boardinghouse, though. Itâs bleak and lonesome, and my room looks out on such an unholy back yard. Itâs the ugliest place in the world. As for catsâwell, surely _all_ the Kingsport cats canât congregate there at night, but half of them must. I adore cats on hearth rugs, snoozing before nice, friendly fires, but cats in back yards at midnight are totally different animals. The first night I was here I cried all night, and so did the cats. You should have seen my nose in the morning. How I wished I had never left home!â âI donât know how you managed to make up your mind to come to Redmond at all, if you are really such an undecided person,â said amused Priscilla. âBless your heart, honey, I didnât. It was father who wanted me to come here. His heart was set on itâwhy, I donât know. It seems perfectly ridiculous to think of me studying for a B.A. degree, doesnât it? Not but what I can do it, all right. I have heaps of brains.â âOh!â said Priscilla vaguely. âYes. But itâs such hard work to use them. And B.A.âs are such learned, dignified, wise, solemn creaturesâthey must be. No, _I_ didnât want to come to Redmond. I did it just to oblige father. He _is_ such a duck. Besides, I knew if I stayed home Iâd have to get married. Mother wanted thatâwanted it decidedly. Mother has plenty of decision. But I really hated the thought of being married for a few years yet. I want to have heaps of fun before I settle down. And, ridiculous as the idea of my being a B.A. is, the idea of my being an old married woman is still more absurd, isnât it? Iâm only eighteen. No, I concluded I would rather come to Redmond than be married. Besides, how could I ever have made up my mind which man to marry?â âWere there so many?â laughed Anne. âHeaps. The boys like me awfullyâthey really do. But there were only two that mattered. The rest were all too young and too poor. I must marry a rich man, you know.â âWhy must you?â âHoney, you couldnât imagine _me_ being a poor manâs wife, could you? I canât do a single useful thing, and I am _very_ extravagant. Oh, no, my husband must have heaps of money. So that narrowed them down to two. But I couldnât decide between two any easier than between two hundred. I knew perfectly well that whichever one I chose Iâd regret all my life that I hadnât married the other.â âDidnât youâloveâeither of them?â asked Anne, a little hesitatingly. It was not easy for her to speak to a stranger of the great mystery and transformation of life. âGoodness, no. _I_ couldnât love anybody. It isnât in me. Besides I wouldnât want to. Being in love makes you a perfect slave, _I_ think. And it would give a man such power to hurt you. Iâd be afraid. No, no, Alec and Alonzo are two dear boys, and I like them both so much that I really donât know which I like the better. That is the trouble. Alec is the best looking, of course, and I simply couldnât marry a man who wasnât handsome. He is good-tempered too, and has lovely, curly, black hair. Heâs rather too perfectâI donât believe Iâd like a perfect husbandâsomebody I could never find fault with.â âThen why not marry Alonzo?â asked Priscilla gravely. âThink of marrying a name like Alonzo!â said Phil dolefully. âI donât believe I could endure it. But he has a classic nose, and it _would_ be a comfort to have a nose in the family that could be depended on. I canât depend on mine. So far, it takes after the Gordon pattern, but Iâm so afraid it will develop Byrne tendencies as I grow older. I examine it every day anxiously to make sure itâs still Gordon. Mother was a Byrne and has the Byrne nose in the Byrnest degree. Wait till you see it. I adore nice noses. Your nose is awfully nice, Anne Shirley. Alonzoâs nose nearly turned the balance in his favor. But _Alonzo!_ No, I couldnât decide. If I could have done as I did with the hatsâstood them both up together, shut my eyes, and jabbed with a hatpinâit would have been quite easy.â âWhat did Alec and Alonzo feel like when you came away?â queried Priscilla. âOh, they still have hope. I told them theyâd have to wait till I could make up my mind. Theyâre quite willing to wait. They both worship me, you know. Meanwhile, I intend to have a good time. I expect I shall have heaps of beaux at Redmond. I canât be happy unless I have, you know. But donât you think the freshmen are fearfully homely? I saw only one really handsome fellow among them. He went away before you came. I heard his chum call him Gilbert. His chum had eyes that stuck out _that far_. But youâre not going yet, girls? Donât go yet.â âI think we must,â said Anne, rather coldly. âItâs getting late, and Iâve some work to do.â âBut youâll both come to see me, wonât you?â asked Philippa, getting up and putting an arm around each. âAnd let me come to see you. I want to be chummy with you. Iâve taken such a fancy to you both. And I havenât quite disgusted you with my frivolity, have I?â âNot quite,â laughed Anne, responding to Philâs squeeze, with a return of cordiality. âBecause Iâm not half so silly as I seem on the surface, you know. You just accept Philippa Gordon, as the Lord made her, with all her faults, and I believe youâll come to like her. Isnât this graveyard a sweet place? Iâd love to be buried here. Hereâs a grave I didnât see beforeâthis one in the iron railingâoh, girls, look, seeâthe stone says itâs the grave of a middy who was killed in the fight between the Shannon and the Chesapeake. Just fancy!â Anne paused by the railing and looked at the worn stone, her pulses thrilling with sudden excitement. The old graveyard, with its over-arching trees and long aisles of shadows, faded from her sight. Instead, she saw the Kingsport Harbor of nearly a century agone. Out of the mist came slowly a great frigate, brilliant with âthe meteor flag of England. â Behind her was another, with a still, heroic form, wrapped in his own starry flag, lying on the quarter deckâthe gallant Lawrence. Timeâs finger had turned back his pages, and that was the Shannon sailing triumphant up the bay with the Chesapeake as her prize. âCome back, Anne Shirleyâcome back,â laughed Philippa, pulling her arm. âYouâre a hundred years away from us. Come back.â Anne came back with a sigh; her eyes were shining softly. âIâve always loved that old story,â she said, âand although the English won that victory, I think it was because of the brave, defeated commander I love it. This grave seems to bring it so near and make it so real. This poor little middy was only eighteen. He âdied of desperate wounds received in gallant actionââso reads his epitaph. It is such as a soldier might wish for.â Before she turned away, Anne unpinned the little cluster of purple pansies she wore and dropped it softly on the grave of the boy who had perished in the great sea-duel. âWell, what do you think of our new friend?â asked Priscilla, when Phil had left them. âI like her. There is something very lovable about her, in spite of all her nonsense. I believe, as she says herself, that she isnât half as silly as she sounds. Sheâs a dear, kissable babyâand I donât know that sheâll ever really grow up.â âI like her, too,â said Priscilla, decidedly. âShe talks as much about boys as Ruby Gillis does. But it always enrages or sickens me to hear Ruby, whereas I just wanted to laugh good-naturedly at Phil. Now, what is the why of that?â âThere is a difference,â said Anne meditatively. âI think itâs because Ruby is really so _conscious_ of boys. She plays at love and love-making. Besides, you feel, when she is boasting of her beaux that she is doing it to rub it well into you that you havenât half so many. Now, when Phil talks of her beaux it sounds as if she was just speaking of chums. She really looks upon boys as good comrades, and she is pleased when she has dozens of them tagging round, simply because she likes to be popular and to be thought popular. Even Alex and AlonzoâIâll never be able to think of those two names separately after thisâare to her just two playfellows who want her to play with them all their lives. Iâm glad we met her, and Iâm glad we went to Old St. Johnâs. I believe Iâve put forth a tiny soul-root into Kingsport soil this afternoon. I hope so. I hate to feel transplanted.â Chapter 5. Letters from Home. For the next three weeks Anne and Priscilla continued to feel as strangers in a strange land. Then, suddenly, everything seemed to fall into focusâRedmond, professors, classes, students, studies, social doings. Life became homogeneous again, instead of being made up of detached fragments. The Freshmen, instead of being a collection of unrelated individuals, found themselves a class, with a class spirit, a class yell, class interests, class antipathies and class ambitions. They won the day in the annual âArts Rushâ against the Sophomores, and thereby gained the respect of all the classes, and an enormous, confidence-giving opinion of themselves. For three years the Sophomores had won in the ârushâ; that the victory of this year perched upon the Freshmenâs banner was attributed to the strategic generalship of Gilbert Blythe, who marshalled the campaign and originated certain new tactics, which demoralized the Sophs and swept the Freshmen to triumph. As a reward of merit he was elected president of the Freshman Class, a position of honor and responsibilityâfrom a Fresh point of view, at leastâcoveted by many. He was also invited to join the âLambsââRedmondese for Lamba Thetaâa compliment rarely paid to a Freshman. As a preparatory initiation ordeal he had to parade the principal business streets of Kingsport for a whole day wearing a sunbonnet and a voluminous kitchen apron of gaudily flowered calico. This he did cheerfully, doffing his sunbonnet with courtly grace when he met ladies of his acquaintance. Charlie Sloane, who had not been asked to join the Lambs, told Anne he did not see how Blythe could do it, and _he_, for his part, could never humiliate himself so. âFancy Charlie Sloane in a âcalikerâ apron and a âsunbunnit,ââ giggled Priscilla. âHeâd look exactly like his old Grandmother Sloane. Gilbert, now, looked as much like a man in them as in his own proper habiliments.â Anne and Priscilla found themselves in the thick of the social life of Redmond. That this came about so speedily was due in great measure to Philippa Gordon. Philippa was the daughter of a rich and well-known man, and belonged to an old and exclusive âBluenoseâ family. This, combined with her beauty and charmâa charm acknowledged by all who met herâpromptly opened the gates of all cliques, clubs and classes in Redmond to her; and where she went Anne and Priscilla went, too. Phil âadoredâ Anne and Priscilla, especially Anne. She was a loyal little soul, crystal-free from any form of snobbishness. âLove me, love my friendsâ seemed to be her unconscious motto. Without effort, she took them with her into her ever widening circle of acquaintanceship, and the two Avonlea girls found their social pathway at Redmond made very easy and pleasant for them, to the envy and wonderment of the other freshettes, who, lacking Philippaâs sponsorship, were doomed to remain rather on the fringe of things during their first college year. To Anne and Priscilla, with their more serious views of life, Phil remained the amusing, lovable baby she had seemed on their first meeting. Yet, as she said herself, she had âheapsâ of brains. When or where she found time to study was a mystery, for she seemed always in demand for some kind of âfun,â and her home evenings were crowded with callers. She had all the âbeauxâ that heart could desire, for nine-tenths of the Freshmen and a big fraction of all the other classes were rivals for her smiles. She was naively delighted over this, and gleefully recounted each new conquest to Anne and Priscilla, with comments that might have made the unlucky loverâs ears burn fiercely. âAlec and Alonzo donât seem to have any serious rival yet,â remarked Anne, teasingly. âNot one,â agreed Philippa. âI write them both every week and tell them all about my young men here. Iâm sure it must amuse them. But, of course, the one I like best I canât get. Gilbert Blythe wonât take any notice of me, except to look at me as if I were a nice little kitten heâd like to pat. Too well I know the reason. I owe you a grudge, Queen Anne. I really ought to hate you and instead I love you madly, and Iâm miserable if I donât see you every day. Youâre different from any girl I ever knew before. When you look at me in a certain way I feel what an insignificant, frivolous little beast I am, and I long to be better and wiser and stronger. And then I make good resolutions; but the first nice-looking mannie who comes my way knocks them all out of my head. Isnât college life magnificent? Itâs so funny to think I hated it that first day. But if I hadnât I might never got really acquainted with you. Anne, please tell me over again that you like me a little bit. I yearn to hear it.â âI like you a big bitâand I think youâre a dear, sweet, adorable, velvety, clawless, littleâkitten,â laughed Anne, âbut I donât see when you ever get time to learn your lessons.â Phil must have found time for she held her own in every class of her year. Even the grumpy old professor of Mathematics, who detested coeds, and had bitterly opposed their admission to Redmond, couldnât floor her. She led the freshettes everywhere, except in English, where Anne Shirley left her far behind. Anne herself found the studies of her Freshman year very easy, thanks in great part to the steady work she and Gilbert had put in during those two past years in Avonlea. This left her more time for a social life which she thoroughly enjoyed. But never for a moment did she forget Avonlea and the friends there. To her, the happiest moments in each week were those in which letters came from home. It was not until she had got her first letters that she began to think she could ever like Kingsport or feel at home there. Before they came, Avonlea had seemed thousands of miles away; those letters brought it near and linked the old life to the new so closely that they began to seem one and the same, instead of two hopelessly segregated existences. The first batch contained six letters, from Jane Andrews, Ruby Gillis, Diana Barry, Marilla, Mrs. Lynde and Davy. Janeâs was a copperplate production, with every âtâ nicely crossed and every âiâ precisely dotted, and not an interesting sentence in it. She never mentioned the school, concerning which Anne was avid to hear; she never answered one of the questions Anne had asked in her letter. But she told Anne how many yards of lace she had recently crocheted, and the kind of weather they were having in Avonlea, and how she intended to have her new dress made, and the way she felt when her head ached. Ruby Gillis wrote a gushing epistle deploring Anneâs absence, assuring her she was horribly missed in everything, asking what the Redmond âfellowsâ were like, and filling the rest with accounts of her own harrowing experiences with her numerous admirers. It was a silly, harmless letter, and Anne would have laughed over it had it not been for the postscript. âGilbert seems to be enjoying Redmond, judging from his letters,â wrote Ruby. âI donât think Charlie is so stuck on it.â So Gilbert was writing to Ruby! Very well. He had a perfect right to, of course. Onlyâ!! Anne did not know that Ruby had written the first letter and that Gilbert had answered it from mere courtesy. She tossed Rubyâs letter aside contemptuously. But it took all Dianaâs breezy, newsy, delightful epistle to banish the sting of Rubyâs postscript. Dianaâs letter contained a little too much Fred, but was otherwise crowded and crossed with items of interest, and Anne almost felt herself back in Avonlea while reading it. Marillaâs was a rather prim and colorless epistle, severely innocent of gossip or emotion. Yet somehow it conveyed to Anne a whiff of the wholesome, simple life at Green Gables, with its savor of ancient peace, and the steadfast abiding love that was there for her. Mrs. Lyndeâs letter was full of church news. Having broken up housekeeping, Mrs. Lynde had more time than ever to devote to church affairs and had flung herself into them heart and soul. She was at present much worked up over the poor âsuppliesâ they were having in the vacant Avonlea pulpit. âI donât believe any but fools enter the ministry nowadays,â she wrote bitterly. âSuch candidates as they have sent us, and such stuff as they preach! Half of it ainât true, and, whatâs worse, it ainât sound doctrine. The one we have now is the worst of the lot. He mostly takes a text and preaches about something else. And he says he doesnât believe all the heathen will be eternally lost. The idea! If they wonât all the money weâve been giving to Foreign Missions will be clean wasted, thatâs what! Last Sunday night he announced that next Sunday heâd preach on the axe-head that swam. I think heâd better confine himself to the Bible and leave sensational subjects alone. Things have come to a pretty pass if a minister canât find enough in Holy Writ to preach about, thatâs what. What church do you attend, Anne? I hope you go regularly. People are apt to get so careless about church-going away from home, and I understand college students are great sinners in this respect. Iâm told many of them actually study their lessons on Sunday. I hope youâll never sink that low, Anne. Remember how you were brought up. And be very careful what friends you make. You never know what sort of creatures are in them colleges. Outwardly they may be as whited sepulchers and inwardly as ravening wolves, thatâs what. Youâd better not have anything to say to any young man who isnât from the Island. âI forgot to tell you what happened the day the minister called here. It was the funniest thing I ever saw. I said to Marilla, âIf Anne had been here wouldnât she have had a laugh?â Even Marilla laughed. You know heâs a very short, fat little man with bow legs. Well, that old pig of Mr. Harrisonâsâthe big, tall oneâhad wandered over here that day again and broke into the yard, and it got into the back porch, unbeknowns to us, and it was there when the minister appeared in the doorway. It made one wild bolt to get out, but there was nowhere to bolt to except between them bow legs. So there it went, and, being as it was so big and the minister so little, it took him clean off his feet and carried him away. His hat went one way and his cane another, just as Marilla and I got to the door. Iâll never forget the look of him. And that poor pig was near scared to death. Iâll never be able to read that account in the Bible of the swine that rushed madly down the steep place into the sea without seeing Mr. Harrisonâs pig careering down the hill with that minister. I guess the pig thought he had the Old Boy on his back instead of inside of him. I was thankful the twins werenât about. It wouldnât have been the right thing for them to have seen a minister in such an undignified predicament. Just before they got to the brook the minister jumped off or fell off. The pig rushed through the brook like mad and up through the woods. Marilla and I run down and helped the minister get up and brush his coat. He wasnât hurt, but he was mad. He seemed to hold Marilla and me responsible for it all, though we told him the pig didnât belong to us, and had been pestering us all summer. Besides, what did he come to the back door for? Youâd never have caught Mr. Allan doing that. Itâll be a long time before we get a man like Mr. Allan. But itâs an ill wind that blows no good. Weâve never seen hoof or hair of that pig since, and itâs my belief we never will. âThings is pretty quiet in Avonlea. I donât find Green Gables as lonesome as I expected. I think Iâll start another cotton warp quilt this winter. Mrs. Silas Sloane has a handsome new apple-leaf pattern. âWhen I feel that I must have some excitement I read the murder trials in that Boston paper my niece sends me. I never used to do it, but theyâre real interesting. The States must be an awful place. I hope youâll never go there, Anne. But the way girls roam over the earth now is something terrible. It always makes me think of Satan in the Book of Job, going to and fro and walking up and down. I donât believe the Lord ever intended it, thatâs what. âDavy has been pretty good since you went away. One day he was bad and Marilla punished him by making him wear Doraâs apron all day, and then he went and cut all Doraâs aprons up. I spanked him for that and then he went and chased my rooster to death. âThe MacPhersons have moved down to my place. Sheâs a great housekeeper and very particular. Sheâs rooted all my June lilies up because she says they make a garden look so untidy. Thomas set them lilies out when we were married. Her husband seems a nice sort of a man, but she canât get over being an old maid, thatâs what. âDonât study too hard, and be sure and put your winter underclothes on as soon as the weather gets cool. Marilla worries a lot about you, but I tell her youâve got a lot more sense than I ever thought you would have at one time, and that youâll be all right.â Davyâs letter plunged into a grievance at the start. âDear anne, please write and tell marilla not to tie me to the rale of the bridge when I go fishing the boys make fun of me when she does. Its awful lonesome here without you but grate fun in school. Jane andrews is crosser than you. I scared mrs. lynde with a jacky lantern last nite. She was offel mad and she was mad cause I chased her old rooster round the yard till he fell down ded. I didnât mean to make him fall down ded. What made him die, anne, I want to know. mrs. lynde threw him into the pig pen she mite of sold him to mr. blair. mr. blair is giving 50 sense apeace for good ded roosters now. I herd mrs. lynde asking the minister to pray for her. What did she do that was so bad, anne, I want to know. Iâve got a kite with a magnificent tail, anne. Milty bolter told me a grate story in school yesterday. it is troo. old Joe Mosey and Leon were playing cards one nite last week in the woods. The cards were on a stump and a big black man bigger than the trees come along and grabbed the cards and the stump and disapered with a noys like thunder. Ill bet they were skared. Milty says the black man was the old harry. was he, anne, I want to know. Mr. kimball over at spenservale is very sick and will have to go to the hospitable. please excuse me while I ask marilla if thats spelled rite. Marilla says its the silem he has to go to not the other place. He thinks he has a snake inside of him. whats it like to have a snake inside of you, anne. I want to know. mrs. lawrence bell is sick to. mrs. lynde says that all that is the matter with her is that she thinks too much about her insides.â âI wonder,â said Anne, as she folded up her letters, âwhat Mrs. Lynde would think of Philippa.â Chapter 6. In the Park. âWhat are you going to do with yourselves today, girls?â asked Philippa, popping into Anneâs room one Saturday afternoon. âWe are going for a walk in the park,â answered Anne. âI ought to stay in and finish my blouse. But I couldnât sew on a day like this. Thereâs something in the air that gets into my blood and makes a sort of glory in my soul. My fingers would twitch and Iâd sew a crooked seam. So itâs ho for the park and the pines.â âDoes âweâ include any one but yourself and Priscilla?â âYes, it includes Gilbert and Charlie, and weâll be very glad if it will include you, also. âBut,â said Philippa dolefully, âif I go Iâll have to be gooseberry, and that will be a new experience for Philippa Gordon.â âWell, new experiences are broadening. Come along, and youâll be able to sympathize with all poor souls who have to play gooseberry often. But where are all the victims?â âOh, I was tired of them all and simply couldnât be bothered with any of them today. Besides, Iâve been feeling a little blueâjust a pale, elusive azure. It isnât serious enough for anything darker. I wrote Alec and Alonzo last week. I put the letters into envelopes and addressed them, but I didnât seal them up. That evening something funny happened. That is, Alec would think it funny, but Alonzo wouldnât be likely to. I was in a hurry, so I snatched Alecâs letterâas I thoughtâout of the envelope and scribbled down a postscript. Then I mailed both letters. I got Alonzoâs reply this morning. Girls, I had put that postscript to his letter and he was furious. Of course heâll get over itâand I donât care if he doesnâtâbut it spoiled my day. So I thought Iâd come to you darlings to get cheered up. After the football season opens I wonât have any spare Saturday afternoons. I adore football. Iâve got the most gorgeous cap and sweater striped in Redmond colors to wear to the games. To be sure, a little way off Iâll look like a walking barberâs pole. Do you know that that Gilbert of yours has been elected Captain of the Freshman football team?â âYes, he told us so last evening,â said Priscilla, seeing that outraged Anne would not answer. âHe and Charlie were down. We knew they were coming, so we painstakingly put out of sight or out of reach all Miss Adaâs cushions. That very elaborate one with the raised embroidery I dropped on the floor in the corner behind the chair it was on. I thought it would be safe there. But would you believe it? Charlie Sloane made for that chair, noticed the cushion behind it, solemnly fished it up, and sat on it the whole evening. Such a wreck of a cushion as it was! Poor Miss Ada asked me today, still smiling, but oh, so reproachfully, why I had allowed it to be sat upon. I told her I hadnâtâthat it was a matter of predestination coupled with inveterate Sloanishness and I wasnât a match for both combined.â âMiss Adaâs cushions are really getting on my nerves,â said Anne. âShe finished two new ones last week, stuffed and embroidered within an inch of their lives. There being absolutely no other cushionless place to put them she stood them up against the wall on the stair landing. They topple over half the time and if we come up or down the stairs in the dark we fall over them. Last Sunday, when Dr. Davis prayed for all those exposed to the perils of the sea, I added in thought âand for all those who live in houses where cushions are loved not wisely but too well!â There! weâre ready, and I see the boys coming through Old St. Johnâs. Do you cast in your lot with us, Phil?â âIâll go, if I can walk with Priscilla and Charlie. That will be a bearable degree of gooseberry. That Gilbert of yours is a darling, Anne, but why does he go around so much with Goggle-eyes?â Anne stiffened. She had no great liking for Charlie Sloane; but he was of Avonlea, so no outsider had any business to laugh at him. âCharlie and Gilbert have always been friends,â she said coldly. âCharlie is a nice boy. Heâs not to blame for his eyes.â âDonât tell me that! He is! He must have done something dreadful in a previous existence to be punished with such eyes. Pris and I are going to have such sport with him this afternoon. Weâll make fun of him to his face and heâll never know it.â Doubtless, âthe abandoned Pâs,â as Anne called them, did carry out their amiable intentions. But Sloane was blissfully ignorant; he thought he was quite a fine fellow to be walking with two such coeds, especially Philippa Gordon, the class beauty and belle. It must surely impress Anne. She would see that some people appreciated him at his real value. Gilbert and Anne loitered a little behind the others, enjoying the calm, still beauty of the autumn afternoon under the pines of the park, on the road that climbed and twisted round the harbor shore. âThe silence here is like a prayer, isnât it?â said Anne, her face upturned to the shining sky. âHow I love the pines! They seem to strike their roots deep into the romance of all the ages. It is so comforting to creep away now and then for a good talk with them. I always feel so happy out here.â ââAnd so in mountain solitudes oâertaken As by some spell divine, Their cares drop from them like the needles shaken From out the gusty pine,ââ quoted Gilbert. âThey make our little ambitions seem rather petty, donât they, Anne?â âI think, if ever any great sorrow came to me, I would come to the pines for comfort,â said Anne dreamily. âI hope no great sorrow ever will come to you, Anne,â said Gilbert, who could not connect the idea of sorrow with the vivid, joyous creature beside him, unwitting that those who can soar to the highest heights can also plunge to the deepest depths, and that the natures which enjoy most keenly are those which also suffer most sharply. âBut there mustâsometime,â mused Anne. âLife seems like a cup of glory held to my lips just now. But there must be some bitterness in itâthere is in every cup. I shall taste mine some day. Well, I hope I shall be strong and brave to meet it. And I hope it wonât be through my own fault that it will come. Do you remember what Dr. Davis said last Sunday eveningâthat the sorrows God sent us brought comfort and strength with them, while the sorrows we brought on ourselves, through folly or wickedness, were by far the hardest to bear? But we mustnât talk of sorrow on an afternoon like this. Itâs meant for the sheer joy of living, isnât it?â âIf I had my way Iâd shut everything out of your life but happiness and pleasure, Anne,â said Gilbert in the tone that meant âdanger ahead.â âThen you would be very unwise,â rejoined Anne hastily. âIâm sure no life can be properly developed and rounded out without some trial and sorrowâthough I suppose it is only when we are pretty comfortable that we admit it. Comeâthe others have got to the pavilion and are beckoning to us.â They all sat down in the little pavilion to watch an autumn sunset of deep red fire and pallid gold. To their left lay Kingsport, its roofs and spires dim in their shroud of violet smoke. To their right lay the harbor, taking on tints of rose and copper as it stretched out into the sunset. Before them the water shimmered, satin smooth and silver gray, and beyond, clean shaven Williamâs Island loomed out of the mist, guarding the town like a sturdy bulldog. Its lighthouse beacon flared through the mist like a baleful star, and was answered by another in the far horizon. âDid you ever see such a strong-looking place?â asked Philippa. âI donât want Williamâs Island especially, but Iâm sure I couldnât get it if I did. Look at that sentry on the summit of the fort, right beside the flag. Doesnât he look as if he had stepped out of a romance?â âSpeaking of romance,â said Priscilla, âweâve been looking for heatherâbut, of course, we couldnât find any. Itâs too late in the season, I suppose.â âHeather!â exclaimed Anne. âHeather doesnât grow in America, does it?â âThere are just two patches of it in the whole continent,â said Phil, âone right here in the park, and one somewhere else in Nova Scotia, I forget where. The famous Highland Regiment, the Black Watch, camped here one year, and, when the men shook out the straw of their beds in the spring, some seeds of heather took root.â âOh, how delightful!â said enchanted Anne. âLetâs go home around by Spofford Avenue,â suggested Gilbert. âWe can see all âthe handsome houses where the wealthy nobles dwell.â Spofford Avenue is the finest residential street in Kingsport. Nobody can build on it unless heâs a millionaire.â âOh, do,â said Phil. âThereâs a perfectly killing little place I want to show you, Anne. _it_ wasnât built by a millionaire. Itâs the first place after you leave the park, and must have grown while Spofford Avenue was still a country road. It _did_ growâit wasnât built! I donât care for the houses on the Avenue. Theyâre too brand new and plateglassy. But this little spot is a dreamâand its nameâbut wait till you see it.â They saw it as they walked up the pine-fringed hill from the park. Just on the crest, where Spofford Avenue petered out into a plain road, was a little white frame house with groups of pines on either side of it, stretching their arms protectingly over its low roof. It was covered with red and gold vines, through which its green-shuttered windows peeped. Before it was a tiny garden, surrounded by a low stone wall. October though it was, the garden was still very sweet with dear, old-fashioned, unworldly flowers and shrubsâsweet may, southern-wood, lemon verbena, alyssum, petunias, marigolds and chrysanthemums. A tiny brick wall, in herring-bone pattern, led from the gate to the front porch. The whole place might have been transplanted from some remote country village; yet there was something about it that made its nearest neighbor, the big lawn-encircled palace of a tobacco king, look exceedingly crude and showy and ill-bred by contrast. As Phil said, it was the difference between being born and being made. âItâs the dearest place I ever saw,â said Anne delightedly. âIt gives me one of my old, delightful funny aches. Itâs dearer and quainter than even Miss Lavendarâs stone house.â âItâs the name I want you to notice especially,â said Phil. âLookâin white letters, around the archway over the gate. âPattyâs Place.â Isnât that killing? Especially on this Avenue of Pinehursts and Elmwolds and Cedarcrofts? âPattyâs Place,â if you please! I adore it. âHave you any idea who Patty is?â asked Priscilla. âPatty Spofford is the name of the old lady who owns it, Iâve discovered. She lives there with her niece, and theyâve lived there for hundreds of years, more or lessâmaybe a little less, Anne. Exaggeration is merely a flight of poetic fancy. I understand that wealthy folk have tried to buy the lot time and againâitâs really worth a small fortune now, you knowâbut âPattyâ wonât sell upon any consideration. And thereâs an apple orchard behind the house in place of a back yardâyouâll see it when we get a little pastâa real apple orchard on Spofford Avenue!â âIâm going to dream about âPattyâs Placeâ tonight,â said Anne. âWhy, I feel as if I belonged to it. I wonder if, by any chance, weâll ever see the inside of it.â âIt isnât likely,â said Priscilla. Anne smiled mysteriously. âNo, it isnât likely. But I believe it will happen. I have a queer, creepy, crawly feelingâyou can call it a presentiment, if you likeâthat âPattyâs Placeâ and I are going to be better acquainted yet.â Chapter 7. Home Again. Those first three weeks at Redmond had seemed long; but the rest of the term flew by on wings of wind. Before they realized it the Redmond students found themselves in the grind of Christmas examinations, emerging therefrom more or less triumphantly. The honor of leading in the Freshman classes fluctuated between Anne, Gilbert and Philippa; Priscilla did very well; Charlie Sloane scraped through respectably, and comported himself as complacently as if he had led in everything. âI canât really believe that this time tomorrow Iâll be in Green Gables,â said Anne on the night before departure. âBut I shall be. And you, Phil, will be in Bolingbroke with Alec and Alonzo.â âIâm longing to see them,â admitted Phil, between the chocolate she was nibbling. âThey really are such dear boys, you know. Thereâs to be no end of dances and drives and general jamborees. I shall never forgive you, Queen Anne, for not coming home with me for the holidays.â ââNeverâ means three days with you, Phil. It was dear of you to ask meâand Iâd love to go to Bolingbroke some day. But I canât go this yearâI _must_ go home. You donât know how my heart longs for it.â âYou wonât have much of a time,â said Phil scornfully. âThereâll be one or two quilting parties, I suppose; and all the old gossips will talk you over to your face and behind your back. Youâll die of lonesomeness, child.â âIn Avonlea?â said Anne, highly amused. âNow, if youâd come with me youâd have a perfectly gorgeous time. Bolingbroke would go wild over you, Queen Anneâyour hair and your style and, oh, everything! Youâre so _different_. Youâd be such a successâand I would bask in reflected gloryâânot the rose but near the rose.â Do come, after all, Anne.â âYour picture of social triumphs is quite fascinating, Phil, but Iâll paint one to offset it. Iâm going home to an old country farmhouse, once green, rather faded now, set among leafless apple orchards. There is a brook below and a December fir wood beyond, where Iâve heard harps swept by the fingers of rain and wind. There is a pond nearby that will be gray and brooding now. There will be two oldish ladies in the house, one tall and thin, one short and fat; and there will be two twins, one a perfect model, the other what Mrs. Lynde calls a âholy terror.â There will be a little room upstairs over the porch, where old dreams hang thick, and a big, fat, glorious feather bed which will almost seem the height of luxury after a boardinghouse mattress. How do you like my picture, Phil?â âIt seems a very dull one,â said Phil, with a grimace. âOh, but Iâve left out the transforming thing,â said Anne softly. âThereâll be love there, Philâfaithful, tender love, such as Iâll never find anywhere else in the worldâlove thatâs waiting for me. That makes my picture a masterpiece, doesnât it, even if the colors are not very brilliant?â Phil silently got up, tossed her box of chocolates away, went up to Anne, and put her arms about her. âAnne, I wish I was like you,â she said soberly. Diana met Anne at the Carmody station the next night, and they drove home together under silent, star-sown depths of sky. Green Gables had a very festal appearance as they drove up the lane. There was a light in every window, the glow breaking out through the darkness like flame-red blossoms swung against the dark background of the Haunted Wood. And in the yard was a brave bonfire with two gay little figures dancing around it, one of which gave an unearthly yell as the buggy turned in under the poplars. âDavy means that for an Indian war-whoop,â said Diana. âMr. Harrisonâs hired boy taught it to him, and heâs been practicing it up to welcome you with. Mrs. Lynde says it has worn her nerves to a frazzle. He creeps up behind her, you know, and then lets go. He was determined to have a bonfire for you, too. Heâs been piling up branches for a fortnight and pestering Marilla to be let pour some kerosene oil over it before setting it on fire. I guess she did, by the smell, though Mrs. Lynde said up to the last that Davy would blow himself and everybody else up if he was let.â Anne was out of the buggy by this time, and Davy was rapturously hugging her knees, while even Dora was clinging to her hand. âIsnât that a bully bonfire, Anne? Just let me show you how to poke itâsee the sparks? I did it for you, Anne, ’cause I was so glad you were coming home.â The kitchen door opened and Marillaâs spare form darkened against the inner light. She preferred to meet Anne in the shadows, for she was horribly afraid that she was going to cry with joyâshe, stern, repressed Marilla, who thought all display of deep emotion unseemly. Mrs. Lynde was behind her, sonsy, kindly, matronly, as of yore. The love that Anne had told Phil was waiting for her surrounded her and enfolded her with its blessing and its sweetness. Nothing, after all, could compare with old ties, old friends, and old Green Gables! How starry Anneâs eyes were as they sat down to the loaded supper table, how pink her cheeks, how silver-clear her laughter! And Diana was going to stay all night, too. How like the dear old times it was! And the rose-bud tea-set graced the table! With Marilla the force of nature could no further go. âI suppose you and Diana will now proceed to talk all night,â said Marilla sarcastically, as the girls went upstairs. Marilla was always sarcastic after any self-betrayal. âYes,â agreed Anne gaily, âbut Iâm going to put Davy to bed first. He insists on that.â âYou bet,â said Davy, as they went along the hall. âI want somebody to say my prayers to again. Itâs no fun saying them alone.â âYou donât say them alone, Davy. God is always with you to hear you.â âWell, I canât see Him,â objected Davy. âI want to pray to somebody I can see, but I _wonât_ say them to Mrs. Lynde or Marilla, there now!â Nevertheless, when Davy was garbed in his gray flannel nighty, he did not seem in a hurry to begin. He stood before Anne, shuffling one bare foot over the other, and looked undecided. âCome, dear, kneel down,â said Anne. Davy came and buried his head in Anneâs lap, but he did not kneel down. âAnne,â he said in a muffled voice. âI donât feel like praying after all. I havenât felt like it for a week now. IâI _didntât_ pray last night nor the night before.â âWhy not, Davy?â asked Anne gently. âYouâyou wonât be mad if I tell you?â implored Davy. Anne lifted the little gray-flannelled body on her knee and cuddled his head on her arm. âDo I ever get âmadâ when you tell me things, Davy?â âNo-o-o, you never do. But you get sorry, and thatâs worse. Youâll be awful sorry when I tell you this, Anneâand youâll be âshamed of me, I sâpose.â âHave you done something naughty, Davy, and is that why you canât say your prayers?â âNo, I havenât done anything naughtyâyet. But I want to do it.â âWhat is it, Davy?â âIâI want to say a bad word, Anne,â blurted out Davy, with a desperate effort. âI heard Mr. Harrisonâs hired boy say it one day last week, and ever since Iâve been wanting to say it _all_ the timeâeven when Iâm saying my prayers.â âSay it then, Davy.â Davy lifted his flushed face in amazement. âBut, Anne, itâs an _awful_ bad word.â â_Say it!_â Davy gave her another incredulous look, then in a low voice he said the dreadful word. The next minute his face was burrowing against her. âOh, Anne, Iâll never say it againânever. Iâll never _want_ to say it again. I knew it was bad, but I didnât sâpose it was soâsoâI didnât sâpose it was like _that_.â âNo, I donât think youâll ever want to say it again, Davyâor think it, either. And I wouldnât go about much with Mr. Harrisonâs hired boy if I were you.â âHe can make bully war-whoops,â said Davy a little regretfully. âBut you donât want your mind filled with bad words, do you, Davyâwords that will poison it and drive out all that is good and manly?â âNo,â said Davy, owl-eyed with introspection. âThen donât go with those people who use them. And now do you feel as if you could say your prayers, Davy?â âOh, yes,â said Davy, eagerly wriggling down on his knees, âI can say them now all right. I ainât scared now to say âif I should die before I wake,â like I was when I was wanting to say that word.â Probably Anne and Diana did empty out their souls to each other that night, but no record of their confidences has been preserved. They both looked as fresh and bright-eyed at breakfast as only youth can look after unlawful hours of revelry and confession. There had been no snow up to this time, but as Diana crossed the old log bridge on her homeward way the white flakes were beginning to flutter down over the fields and woods, russet and gray in their dreamless sleep. Soon the far-away slopes and hills were dim and wraith-like through their gauzy scarfing, as if pale autumn had flung a misty bridal veil over her hair and was waiting for her wintry bridegroom. So they had a white Christmas after all, and a very pleasant day it was. In the forenoon letters and gifts came from Miss Lavendar and Paul; Anne opened them in the cheerful Green Gables kitchen, which was filled with what Davy, sniffing in ecstasy, called âpretty smells.â âMiss Lavendar and Mr. Irving are settled in their new home now,â reported Anne. âI am sure Miss Lavendar is perfectly happyâI know it by the general tone of her letterâbut thereâs a note from Charlotta the Fourth. She doesnât like Boston at all, and she is fearfully homesick. Miss Lavendar wants me to go through to Echo Lodge some day while Iâm home and light a fire to air it, and see that the cushions arenât getting moldy. I think Iâll get Diana to go over with me next week, and we can spend the evening with Theodora Dix. I want to see Theodora. By the way, is Ludovic Speed still going to see her?â âThey say so,â said Marilla, âand heâs likely to continue it. Folks have given up expecting that that courtship will ever arrive anywhere.â âIâd hurry him up a bit, if I was Theodora, thatâs what,â said Mrs. Lynde. And there is not the slightest doubt but that she would. There was also a characteristic scrawl from Philippa, full of Alec and Alonzo, what they said and what they did, and how they looked when they saw her. âBut I canât make up my mind yet which to marry,â wrote Phil. âI do wish you had come with me to decide for me. Some one will have to. When I saw Alec my heart gave a great thump and I thought, âHe might be the right one.â And then, when Alonzo came, thump went my heart again. So thatâs no guide, though it should be, according to all the novels Iâve ever read. Now, Anne, _your_ heart wouldnât thump for anybody but the genuine Prince Charming, would it? There must be something radically wrong with mine. But Iâm having a perfectly gorgeous time. How I wish you were here! Itâs snowing today, and Iâm rapturous. I was so afraid weâd have a green Christmas and I loathe them. You know, when Christmas is a dirty grayey-browney affair, looking as if it had been left over a hundred years ago and had been in soak ever since, it is called a _green_ Christmas! Donât ask me why. As Lord Dundreary says, âthere are thome thingth no fellow can underthtand.â âAnne, did you ever get on a street car and then discover that you hadnât any money with you to pay your fare? I did, the other day. Itâs quite awful. I had a nickel with me when I got on the car. I thought it was in the left pocket of my coat. When I got settled down comfortably I felt for it. It wasnât there. I had a cold chill. I felt in the other pocket. Not there. I had another chill. Then I felt in a little inside pocket. All in vain. I had two chills at once. âI took off my gloves, laid them on the seat, and went over all my pockets again. It was not there. I stood up and shook myself, and then looked on the floor. The car was full of people, who were going home from the opera, and they all stared at me, but I was past caring for a little thing like that. âBut I could not find my fare. I concluded I must have put it in my mouth and swallowed it inadvertently. âI didnât know what to do. Would the conductor, I wondered, stop the car and put me off in ignominy and shame? Was it possible that I could convince him that I was merely the victim of my own absentmindedness, and not an unprincipled creature trying to obtain a ride upon false pretenses? How I wished that Alec or Alonzo were there. But they werenât because I wanted them. If I _hadnât_ wanted them they would have been there by the dozen. And I couldnât decide what to say to the conductor when he came around. As soon as I got one sentence of explanation mapped out in my mind I felt nobody could believe it and I must compose another. It seemed there was nothing to do but trust in Providence, and for all the comfort that gave me I might as well have been the old lady who, when told by the captain during a storm that she must put her trust in the Almighty exclaimed, âOh, Captain, is it as bad as that?â âJust at the conventional moment, when all hope had fled, and the conductor was holding out his box to the passenger next to me, I suddenly remembered where I had put that wretched coin of the realm. I hadnât swallowed it after all. I meekly fished it out of the index finger of my glove and poked it in the box. I smiled at everybody and felt that it was a beautiful world.â The visit to Echo Lodge was not the least pleasant of many pleasant holiday outings. Anne and Diana went back to it by the old way of the beech woods, carrying a lunch basket with them. Echo Lodge, which had been closed ever since Miss Lavendarâs wedding, was briefly thrown open to wind and sunshine once more, and firelight glimmered again in the little rooms. The perfume of Miss Lavendarâs rose bowl still filled the air. It was hardly possible to believe that Miss Lavendar would not come tripping in presently, with her brown eyes a-star with welcome, and that Charlotta the Fourth, blue of bow and wide of smile, would not pop through the door. Paul, too, seemed hovering around, with his fairy fancies. âIt really makes me feel a little bit like a ghost revisiting the old time glimpses of the moon,â laughed Anne. âLetâs go out and see if the echoes are at home. Bring the old horn. It is still behind the kitchen door. â The echoes were at home, over the white river, as silver-clear and multitudinous as ever; and when they had ceased to answer the girls locked up Echo Lodge again and went away in the perfect half hour that follows the rose and saffron of a winter sunset. Chapter 8. Anneâs First Proposal. The old year did not slip away in a green twilight, with a pinky-yellow sunset. Instead, it went out with a wild, white bluster and blow. It was one of the nights when the storm-wind hurtles over the frozen meadows and black hollows, and moans around the eaves like a lost creature, and drives the snow sharply against the shaking panes. âJust the sort of night people like to cuddle down between their blankets and count their mercies,â said Anne to Jane Andrews, who had come up to spend the afternoon and stay all night. But when they were cuddled between their blankets, in Anneâs little porch room, it was not her mercies of which Jane was thinking. âAnne,â she said very solemnly, âI want to tell you something. May Iâ Anne was feeling rather sleepy after the party Ruby Gillis had given the night before. She would much rather have gone to sleep than listen to Janeâs confidences, which she was sure would bore her. She had no prophetic inkling of what was coming. Probably Jane was engaged, too; rumor averred that Ruby Gillis was engaged to the Spencervale schoolteacher, about whom all the girls were said to be quite wild. âIâll soon be the only fancy-free maiden of our old quartet,â thought Anne, drowsily. Aloud she said, âOf course.â âAnne,â said Jane, still more solemnly, âwhat do you think of my brother Billy?â Anne gasped over this unexpected question, and floundered helplessly in her thoughts. Goodness, what _did_ she think of Billy Andrews? She had never thought _anything_ about himâround-faced, stupid, perpetually smiling, good-natured Billy Andrews. Did _anybody_ ever think about Billy Andrews? âIâI donât understand, Jane,â she stammered. âWhat do you meanâexactly?â âDo you like Billy?â asked Jane bluntly. âWhyâwhyâyes, I like him, of course,â gasped Anne, wondering if she were telling the literal truth. Certainly she did not _dis_like Billy. But could the indifferent tolerance with which she regarded him, when he happened to be in her range of vision, be considered positive enough for liking? _What_ was Jane trying to elucidate? âWould you like him for a husband?â asked Jane calmly. âA husband!â Anne had been sitting up in bed, the better to wrestle with the problem of her exact opinion of Billy Andrews. Now she fell flatly back on her pillows, the very breath gone out of her. âWhose husband?â âYours, of course,â answered Jane. âBilly wants to marry you. Heâs always been crazy about youâand now father has given him the upper farm in his own name and thereâs nothing to prevent him from getting married. But heâs so shy he couldnât ask you himself if youâd have him, so he got me to do it. Iâd rather not have, but he gave me no peace till I said I would, if I got a good chance. What do you think about it, Anne?â Was it a dream? Was it one of those nightmare things in which you find yourself engaged or married to some one you hate or donât know, without the slightest idea how it ever came about? No, she, Anne Shirley, was lying there, wide awake, in her own bed, and Jane Andrews was beside her, calmly proposing for her brother Billy. Anne did not know whether she wanted to writhe or laugh; but she could do neither, for Janeâs feelings must not be hurt. âIâI couldnât marry Bill, you know, Jane,â she managed to gasp. âWhy, such an idea never occurred to meânever!â âI donât suppose it did,â agreed Jane. âBilly has always been far too shy to think of courting. But you might think it over, Anne. Billy is a good fellow. I must say that, if he is my brother. He has no bad habits and heâs a great worker, and you can depend on him. âA bird in the hand is worth two in the bush.â He told me to tell you heâd be quite willing to wait till you got through college, if you insisted, though heâd _rather_ get married this spring before the planting begins. Heâd always be very good to you, Iâm sure, and you know, Anne, Iâd love to have you for a sister.â âI canât marry Billy,â said Anne decidedly. She had recovered her wits, and was even feeling a little angry. It was all so ridiculous. âThere is no use thinking of it, Jane. I donât care anything for him in that way, and you must tell him so.â âWell, I didnât suppose you would,â said Jane with a resigned sigh, feeling that she had done her best. âI told Billy I didnât believe it was a bit of use to ask you, but he insisted. Well, youâve made your decision, Anne, and I hope you wonât regret it.â Jane spoke rather coldly. She had been perfectly sure that the enamored Billy had no chance at all of inducing Anne to marry him. Nevertheless, she felt a little resentment that Anne Shirley, who was, after all, merely an adopted orphan, without kith or kin, should refuse her brotherâone of the Avonlea Andrews. Well, pride sometimes goes before a fall, Jane reflected ominously. Anne permitted herself to smile in the darkness over the idea that she might ever regret not marrying Billy Andrews. âI hope Billy wonât feel very badly over it,â she said nicely. Jane made a movement as if she were tossing her head on her pillow. âOh, he wonât break his heart. Billy has too much good sense for that. He likes Nettie Blewett pretty well, too, and mother would rather he married her than any one. Sheâs such a good manager and saver. I think, when Billy is once sure you wonât have him, heâll take Nettie. Please donât mention this to any one, will you, Anne?â âCertainly not,â said Anne, who had no desire whatever to publish abroad the fact that Billy Andrews wanted to marry her, preferring her, when all was said and done, to Nettie Blewett. Nettie Blewett! âAnd now I suppose weâd better go to sleep,â suggested Jane. To sleep went Jane easily and speedily; but, though very unlike MacBeth in most respects, she had certainly contrived to murder sleep for Anne. That proposed-to damsel lay on a wakeful pillow until the wee smaâs, but her meditations were far from being romantic. It was not, however, until the next morning that she had an opportunity to indulge in a good laugh over the whole affair. When Jane had gone homeâstill with a hint of frost in voice and manner because Anne had declined so ungratefully and decidedly the honor of an alliance with the House of AndrewsâAnne retreated to the porch room, shut the door, and had her laugh out at last. âIf I could only share the joke with some one!â she thought. âBut I canât. Diana is the only one Iâd want to tell, and, even if I hadnât sworn secrecy to Jane, I canât tell Diana things now. She tells everything to FredâI know she does. Well, Iâve had my first proposal. I supposed it would come some dayâbut I certainly never thought it would be by proxy. Itâs awfully funnyâand yet thereâs a sting in it, too, somehow.â Anne knew quite well wherein the sting consisted, though she did not put it into words. She had had her secret dreams of the first time some one should ask her the great question. And it had, in those dreams, always been very romantic and beautiful: and the âsome oneâ was to be very handsome and dark-eyed and distinguished-looking and eloquent, whether he were Prince Charming to be enraptured with âyes,â or one to whom a regretful, beautifully worded, but hopeless refusal must be given. If the latter, the refusal was to be expressed so delicately that it would be next best thing to acceptance, and he would go away, after kissing her hand, assuring her of his unalterable, life-long devotion. And it would always be a beautiful memory, to be proud of and a little sad about, also. And now, this thrilling experience had turned out to be merely grotesque. Billy Andrews had got his sister to propose for him because his father had given him the upper farm; and if Anne wouldnât âhave himâ Nettie Blewett would. There was romance for you, with a vengeance! Anne laughedâand then sighed. The bloom had been brushed from one little maiden dream. Would the painful process go on until everything became prosaic and hum-drum? Chapter 9. An Unwelcome Lover and a Welcome Friend. The second term at Redmond sped as quickly as had the firstââactually whizzed away,â Philippa said. Anne enjoyed it thoroughly in all its phasesâthe stimulating class rivalry, the making and deepening of new and helpful friendships, the gay little social stunts, the doings of the various societies of which she was a member, the widening of horizons and interests. She studied hard, for she had made up her mind to win the Thorburn Scholarship in English. This being won, meant that she could come back to Redmond the next year without trenching on Marillaâs small savingsâsomething Anne was determined she would not do. Gilbert, too, was in full chase after a scholarship, but found plenty of time for frequent calls at Thirty-eight, St. Johnâs. He was Anneâs escort at nearly all the college affairs, and she knew that their names were coupled in Redmond gossip. Anne raged over this but was helpless; she could not cast an old friend like Gilbert aside, especially when he had grown suddenly wise and wary, as behooved him in the dangerous proximity of more than one Redmond youth who would gladly have taken his place by the side of the slender, red-haired coed, whose gray eyes were as alluring as stars of evening. Anne was never attended by the crowd of willing victims who hovered around Philippaâs conquering march through her Freshman year; but there was a lanky, brainy Freshie, a jolly, little, round Sophomore, and a tall, learned Junior who all liked to call at Thirty-eight, St. Johnâs, and talk over âologies and âisms, as well as lighter subjects, with Anne, in the becushioned parlor of that domicile. Gilbert did not love any of them, and he was exceedingly careful to give none of them the advantage over him by any untimely display of his real feelings Anne-ward. To her he had become again the boy-comrade of Avonlea days, and as such could hold his own against any smitten swain who had so far entered the lists against him. As a companion, Anne honestly acknowledged nobody could be so satisfactory as Gilbert; she was very glad, so she told herself, that he had evidently dropped all nonsensical ideasâthough she spent considerable time secretly wondering why. Only one disagreeable incident marred that winter. Charlie Sloane, sitting bolt upright on Miss Adaâs most dearly beloved cushion, asked Anne one night if she would promise âto become Mrs. Charlie Sloane some day.â Coming after Billy Andrewsâ proxy effort, this was not quite the shock to Anneâs romantic sensibilities that it would otherwise have been; but it was certainly another heart-rending disillusion. She was angry, too, for she felt that she had never given Charlie the slightest encouragement to suppose such a thing possible. But what could you expect of a Sloane, as Mrs. Rachel Lynde would ask scornfully? Charlieâs whole attitude, tone, air, words, fairly reeked with Sloanishness. âHe was conferring a great honorâno doubt whatever about that. And when Anne, utterly insensible to the honor, refused him, as delicately and considerately as she couldâfor even a Sloane had feelings which ought not to be unduly laceratedâSloanishness still further betrayed itself. Charlie certainly did not take his dismissal as Anneâs imaginary rejected suitors did. Instead, he became angry, and showed it; he said two or three quite nasty things; Anneâs temper flashed up mutinously and she retorted with a cutting little speech whose keenness pierced even Charlieâs protective Sloanishness and reached the quick; he caught up his hat and flung himself out of the house with a very red face; Anne rushed upstairs, falling twice over Miss Adaâs cushions on the way, and threw herself on her bed, in tears of humiliation and rage. Had she actually stooped to quarrel with a Sloane? Was it possible anything Charlie Sloane could say had power to make her angry? Oh, this was degradation, indeedâworse even than being the rival of Nettie Blewett! âI wish I need never see the horrible creature again,â she sobbed vindictively into her pillows. She could not avoid seeing him again, but the outraged Charlie took care that it should not be at very close quarters. Miss Adaâs cushions were henceforth safe from his depredations, and when he met Anne on the street, or in Redmondâs halls, his bow was icy in the extreme. Relations between these two old schoolmates continued to be thus strained for nearly a year! Then Charlie transferred his blighted affections to a round, rosy, snub-nosed, blue-eyed, little Sophomore who appreciated them as they deserved, whereupon he forgave Anne and condescended to be civil to her again; in a patronizing manner intended to show her just what she had lost. One day Anne scurried excitedly into Priscillaâs room. âRead that,â she cried, tossing Priscilla a letter. âItâs from Stellaâand sheâs coming to Redmond next yearâand what do you think of her idea? I think itâs a perfectly splendid one, if we can only carry it out. Do you suppose we can, Pris?â âIâll be better able to tell you when I find out what it is,â said Priscilla, casting aside a Greek lexicon and taking up Stellaâs letter. Stella Maynard had been one of their chums at Queenâs Academy and had been teaching school ever since. âBut Iâm going to give it up, Anne dear,â she wrote, âand go to college next year. As I took the third year at Queenâs I can enter the Sophomore year. Iâm tired of teaching in a back country school. Some day Iâm going to write a treatise on âThe Trials of a Country Schoolmarm.â It will be a harrowing bit of realism. It seems to be the prevailing impression that we live in clover, and have nothing to do but draw our quarterâs salary. My treatise shall tell the truth about us. Why, if a week should pass without some one telling me that I am doing easy work for big pay I would conclude that I might as well order my ascension robe âimmediately and to onct.â âWell, you get your money easy,â some rate-payer will tell me, condescendingly. âAll you have to do is to sit there and hear lessons.â I used to argue the matter at first, but Iâm wiser now. Facts are stubborn things, but as some one has wisely said, not half so stubborn as fallacies. So I only smile loftily now in eloquent silence. Why, I have nine grades in my school and I have to teach a little of everything, from investigating the interiors of earthworms to the study of the solar system. My youngest pupil is fourâhis mother sends him to school to âget him out of the wayââand my oldest twentyâit âsuddenly struck himâ that it would be easier to go to school and get an education than follow the plough any longer. In the wild effort to cram all sorts of research into six hours a day I donât wonder if the children feel like the little boy who was taken to see the biograph. âI have to look for whatâs coming next before I know what went last,â he complained. I feel like that myself. âAnd the letters I get, Anne! Tommyâs mother writes me that Tommy is not coming on in arithmetic as fast as she would like. He is only in simple reduction yet, and Johnny Johnson is in fractions, and Johnny isnât half as smart as her Tommy, and she canât understand it. And Susyâs father wants to know why Susy canât write a letter without misspelling half the words, and Dickâs aunt wants me to change his seat, because that bad Brown boy he is sitting with is teaching him to say naughty words. âAs to the financial partâbut Iâll not begin on that. Those whom the gods wish to destroy they first make country schoolmarms! âThere, I feel better, after that growl. After all, Iâve enjoyed these past two years. But Iâm coming to Redmond. âAnd now, Anne, Iâve a little plan. You know how I loathe boarding. Iâve boarded for four years and Iâm so tired of it. I donât feel like enduring three years more of it. âNow, why canât you and Priscilla and I club together, rent a little house somewhere in Kingsport, and board ourselves? It would be cheaper than any other way. Of course, we would have to have a housekeeper and I have one ready on the spot. Youâve heard me speak of Aunt Jamesina? Sheâs the sweetest aunt that ever lived, in spite of her name. She canât help that! She was called Jamesina because her father, whose name was James, was drowned at sea a month before she was born. I always call her Aunt Jimsie. Well, her only daughter has recently married and gone to the foreign mission field. Aunt Jamesina is left alone in a great big house, and she is horribly lonesome. She will come to Kingsport and keep house for us if we want her, and I know youâll both love her. The more I think of the plan the more I like it. We could have such good, independent times. âNow, if you and Priscilla agree to it, wouldnât it be a good idea for you, who are on the spot, to look around and see if you can find a suitable house this spring? That would be better than leaving it till the fall. If you could get a furnished one so much the better, but if not, we can scare up a few sticks of finiture between us and old family friends with attics. Anyhow, decide as soon as you can and write me, so that Aunt Jamesina will know what plans to make for next year.â âI think itâs a good idea,â said Priscilla. âSo do I,â agreed Anne delightedly. âOf course, we have a nice boardinghouse here, but, when allâs said and done, a boardinghouse isnât home. So letâs go house-hunting at once, before exams come on.â âIâm afraid it will be hard enough to get a really suitable house,â warned Priscilla. âDonât expect too much, Anne. Nice houses in nice localities will probably be away beyond our means. Weâll likely have to content ourselves with a shabby little place on some street whereon live people whom to know is to be unknown, and make life inside compensate for the outside.â Accordingly they went house-hunting, but to find just what they wanted proved even harder than Priscilla had feared. Houses there were galore, furnished and unfurnished; but one was too big, another too small; this one too expensive, that one too far from Redmond. Exams were on and over; the last week of the term came and still their âhouse oâdreams,â as Anne called it, remained a castle in the air. âWe shall have to give up and wait till the fall, I suppose,â said Priscilla wearily, as they rambled through the park on one of Aprilâs darling days of breeze and blue, when the harbor was creaming and shimmering beneath the pearl-hued mists floating over it. âWe may find some shack to shelter us then; and if not, boardinghouses we shall have always with us.â âIâm not going to worry about it just now, anyway, and spoil this lovely afternoon,â said Anne, gazing around her with delight. The fresh chill air was faintly charged with the aroma of pine balsam, and the sky above was crystal clear and blueâa great inverted cup of blessing. âSpring is singing in my blood today, and the lure of April is abroad on the air. Iâm seeing visions and dreaming dreams, Pris. Thatâs because the wind is from the west. I do love the west wind. It sings of hope and gladness, doesnât it? When the east wind blows I always think of sorrowful rain on the eaves and sad waves on a gray shore. When I get old I shall have rheumatism when the wind is east.â âAnd isnât it jolly when you discard furs and winter garments for the first time and sally forth, like this, in spring attire?â laughed Priscilla. âDonât you feel as if you had been made over new?â âEverything is new in the spring,â said Anne. âSprings themselves are always so new, too. No spring is ever just like any other spring. It always has something of its own to be its own peculiar sweetness. See how green the grass is around that little pond, and how the willow buds are bursting.â âAnd exams are over and goneâthe time of Convocation will come soonânext Wednesday. This day next week weâll be home.â âIâm glad,â said Anne dreamily. âThere are so many things I want to do. I want to sit on the back porch steps and feel the breeze blowing down over Mr. Harrisonâs fields. I want to hunt ferns in the Haunted Wood and gather violets in Violet Vale. Do you remember the day of our golden picnic, Priscilla? I want to hear the frogs singing and the poplars whispering. But Iâve learned to love Kingsport, too, and Iâm glad Iâm coming back next fall. If I hadnât won the Thorburn I donât believe I could have. I _couldnât_ take any of Marillaâs little hoard.â âIf we could only find a house!â sighed Priscilla. âLook over there at Kingsport, Anneâhouses, houses everywhere, and not one for us.â âStop it, Pris. âThe best is yet to be.â Like the old Roman, weâll find a house or build one. On a day like this thereâs no such word as fail in my bright lexicon.â They lingered in the park until sunset, living in the amazing miracle and glory and wonder of the springtide; and they went home as usual, by way of Spofford Avenue, that they might have the delight of looking at Pattyâs Place. âI feel as if something mysterious were going to happen right awayââby the pricking of my thumbs,ââ said Anne, as they went up the slope. âItâs a nice story-bookish feeling. Whyâwhyâwhy! Priscilla Grant, look over there and tell me if itâs true, or am I seeinâ things?â Priscilla looked. Anneâs thumbs and eyes had not deceived her. Over the arched gateway of Pattyâs Place dangled a little, modest sign. It said âTo Let, Furnished. Inquire Within.â âPriscilla,â said Anne, in a whisper, âdo you suppose itâs possible that we could rent Pattyâs Place?â âNo, I donât,â averred Priscilla. âIt would be too good to be true. Fairy tales donât happen nowadays. I wonât hope, Anne. The disappointment would be too awful to bear. Theyâre sure to want more for it than we can afford. Remember, itâs on Spofford Avenue.â âWe must find out anyhow,â said Anne resolutely. âItâs too late to call this evening, but weâll come tomorrow. Oh, Pris, if we can get this darling spot! Iâve always felt that my fortunes were linked with Pattyâs Place, ever since I saw it first.â Chapter 10. Pattyâs Place. The next evening found them treading resolutely the herring-bone walk through the tiny garden. The April wind was filling the pine trees with its roundelay, and the grove was alive with robinsâgreat, plump, saucy fellows, strutting along the paths. The girls rang rather timidly, and were admitted by a grim and ancient handmaiden. The door opened directly into a large living-room, where by a cheery little fire sat two other ladies, both of whom were also grim and ancient. Except that one looked to be about seventy and the other fifty, there seemed little difference between them. Each had amazingly big, light-blue eyes behind steel-rimmed spectacles; each wore a cap and a gray shawl; each was knitting without haste and without rest; each rocked placidly and looked at the girls without speaking; and just behind each sat a large white china dog, with round green spots all over it, a green nose and green ears. Those dogs captured Anneâs fancy on the spot; they seemed like the twin guardian deities of Pattyâs Place. For a few minutes nobody spoke. The girls were too nervous to find words, and neither the ancient ladies nor the china dogs seemed conversationally inclined. Anne glanced about the room. What a dear place it was! Another door opened out of it directly into the pine grove and the robins came boldly up on the very step. The floor was spotted with round, braided mats, such as Marilla made at Green Gables, but which were considered out of date everywhere else, even in Avonlea. And yet here they were on Spofford Avenue! A big, polished grandfatherâs clock ticked loudly and solemnly in a corner. There were delightful little cupboards over the mantelpiece, behind whose glass doors gleamed quaint bits of china. The walls were hung with old prints and silhouettes. In one corner the stairs went up, and at the first low turn was a long window with an inviting seat. It was all just as Anne had known it must be. By this time the silence had grown too dreadful, and Priscilla nudged Anne to intimate that she must speak. âWeâweâsaw by your sign that this house is to let,â said Anne faintly, addressing the older lady, who was evidently Miss Patty Spofford. âOh, yes,â said Miss Patty. âI intended to take that sign down today.â âThenâthen we are too late,â said Anne sorrowfully. âYouâve let it to some one else?â âNo, but we have decided not to let it at all.â âOh, Iâm so sorry,â exclaimed Anne impulsively. âI love this place so. I did hope we could have got it.â Then did Miss Patty lay down her knitting, take off her specs, rub them, put them on again, and for the first time look at Anne as at a human being. The other lady followed her example so perfectly that she might as well have been a reflection in a mirror. âYou _love_ it,â said Miss Patty with emphasis. âDoes that mean that you really _love_ it? Or that you merely like the looks of it? The girls nowadays indulge in such exaggerated statements that one never can tell what they _do_ mean. It wasnât so in my young days. _Then_ a girl did not say she _loved_ turnips, in just the same tone as she might have said she loved her mother or her Savior. â Anneâs conscience bore her up. âI really do love it,â she said gently. âIâve loved it ever since I saw it last fall. My two college chums and I want to keep house next year instead of boarding, so we are looking for a little place to rent; and when I saw that this house was to let I was so happy.â âIf you love it, you can have it,â said Miss Patty. âMaria and I decided today that we would not let it after all, because we did not like any of the people who have wanted it. We donât _have_ to let it. We can afford to go to Europe even if we donât let it. It would help us out, but not for gold will I let my home pass into the possession of such people as have come here and looked at it. _You_ are different. I believe you do love it and will be good to it. You can have it.â âIfâif we can afford to pay what you ask for it,â hesitated Anne. Miss Patty named the amount required. Anne and Priscilla looked at each other. Priscilla shook her head. âIâm afraid we canât afford quite so much,â said Anne, choking back her disappointment. âYou see, we are only college girls and we are poor.â âWhat were you thinking you could afford?â demanded Miss Patty, ceasing not to knit. Anne named her amount. Miss Patty nodded gravely. âThat will do. As I told you, it is not strictly necessary that we should let it at all. We are not rich, but we have enough to go to Europe on. I have never been in Europe in my life, and never expected or wanted to go. But my niece there, Maria Spofford, has taken a fancy to go. Now, you know a young person like Maria canât go globetrotting alone.â âNoâIâI suppose not,â murmured Anne, seeing that Miss Patty was quite solemnly in earnest. âOf course not. So I have to go along to look after her. I expect to enjoy it, too; Iâm seventy years old, but Iâm not tired of living yet. I daresay Iâd have gone to Europe before if the idea had occurred to me. We shall be away for two years, perhaps three. We sail in June and we shall send you the key, and leave all in order for you to take possession when you choose. We shall pack away a few things we prize especially, but all the rest will be left.â âWill you leave the china dogs?â asked Anne timidly. âWould you like me to?â âOh, indeed, yes. They are delightful.â A pleased expression came into Miss Pattyâs face. âI think a great deal of those dogs,â she said proudly. âThey are over a hundred years old, and they have sat on either side of this fireplace ever since my brother Aaron brought them from London fifty years ago. Spofford Avenue was called after my brother Aaron. âA fine man he was,â said Miss Maria, speaking for the first time. âAh, you donât see the like of him nowadays.â âHe was a good uncle to you, Maria,â said Miss Patty, with evident emotion. âYou do well to remember him.â âI shall always remember him,â said Miss Maria solemnly. âI can see him, this minute, standing there before that fire, with his hands under his coat-tails, beaming on us.â Miss Maria took out her handkerchief and wiped her eyes; but Miss Patty came resolutely back from the regions of sentiment to those of business. âI shall leave the dogs where they are, if you will promise to be very careful of them,â she said. âTheir names are Gog and Magog. Gog looks to the right and Magog to the left. And thereâs just one thing more. You donât object, I hope, to this house being called Pattyâs Place?â âNo, indeed. We think that is one of the nicest things about it.â âYou have sense, I see,â said Miss Patty in a tone of great satisfaction. âWould you believe it? All the people who came here to rent the house wanted to know if they couldnât take the name off the gate during their occupation of it. I told them roundly that the name went with the house. This has been Pattyâs Place ever since my brother Aaron left it to me in his will, and Pattyâs Place it shall remain until I die and Maria dies. After that happens the next possessor can call it any fool name he likes,â concluded Miss Patty, much as she might have said, âAfter thatâthe deluge.â âAnd now, wouldnât you like to go over the house and see it all before we consider the bargain made?â Further exploration still further delighted the girls. Besides the big living-room, there was a kitchen and a small bedroom downstairs. Upstairs were three rooms, one large and two small. Anne took an especial fancy to one of the small ones, looking out into the big pines, and hoped it would be hers. It was papered in pale blue and had a little, old-timey toilet table with sconces for candles. There was a diamond-paned window with a seat under the blue muslin frills that would be a satisfying spot for studying or dreaming. âItâs all so delicious that I know we are going to wake up and find it a fleeting vision of the night,â said Priscilla as they went away. âMiss Patty and Miss Maria are hardly such stuff as dreams are made of,â laughed Anne. âCan you fancy them âglobe-trottingââespecially in those shawls and caps?â âI suppose theyâll take them off when they really begin to trot,â said Priscilla, âbut I know theyâll take their knitting with them everywhere. They simply couldnât be parted from it. They will walk about Westminster Abbey and knit, I feel sure. Meanwhile, Anne, we shall be living in Pattyâs Placeâand on Spofford Avenue. I feel like a millionairess even now.â âI feel like one of the morning stars that sang for joy,â said Anne. Phil Gordon crept into Thirty-eight, St. Johnâs, that night and flung herself on Anneâs bed. âGirls, dear, Iâm tired to death. I feel like the man without a countryâor was it without a shadow? I forget which. Anyway, Iâve been packing up.â âAnd I suppose you are worn out because you couldnât decide which things to pack first, or where to put them,â laughed Priscilla. âE-zackly. And when I had got everything jammed in somehow, and my landlady and her maid had both sat on it while I locked it, I discovered I had packed a whole lot of things I wanted for Convocation at the very bottom. I had to unlock the old thing and poke and dive into it for an hour before I fished out what I wanted. I would get hold of something that felt like what I was looking for, and Iâd yank it up, and it would be something else. No, Anne, I did _not_ swear.â âI didnât say you did.â âWell, you looked it. But I admit my thoughts verged on the profane. And I have such a cold in the headâI can do nothing but sniffle, sigh and sneeze. Isnât that alliterative agony for you? Queen Anne, do say something to cheer me up.â âRemember that next Thursday night, youâll be back in the land of Alec and Alonzo,â suggested Anne. Phil shook her head dolefully. âMore alliteration. No, I donât want Alec and Alonzo when I have a cold in the head. But what has happened you two? Now that I look at you closely you seem all lighted up with an internal iridescence. Why, youâre actually _shining!_ Whatâs up?â âWe are going to live in Pattyâs Place next winter,â said Anne triumphantly. âLive, mark you, not board! Weâve rented it, and Stella Maynard is coming, and her aunt is going to keep house for us.â Phil bounced up, wiped her nose, and fell on her knees before Anne. âGirlsâgirlsâlet me come, too. Oh, Iâll be so good. If thereâs no room for me Iâll sleep in the little doghouse in the orchardâIâve seen it. Only let me come.â âGet up, you goose.â âI wonât stir off my marrow bones till you tell me I can live with you next winter.â Anne and Priscilla looked at each other. Then Anne said slowly, âPhil dear, weâd love to have you. But we may as well speak plainly. Iâm poorâPris is poorâStella Maynard is poorâour housekeeping will have to be very simple and our table plain. Youâd have to live as we would. Now, you are rich and your boardinghouse fare attests the fact.â âOh, what do I care for that?â demanded Phil tragically. âBetter a dinner of herbs where your chums are than a stalled ox in a lonely boardinghouse. Donât think Iâm _all_ stomach, girls. Iâll be willing to live on bread and waterâwith just a _leetle_ jamâif youâll let me come.â âAnd then,â continued Anne, âthere will be a good deal of work to be done. Stellaâs aunt canât do it all. We all expect to have our chores to do. Now, youââ âToil not, neither do I spin,â finished Philippa. âBut Iâll learn to do things. Youâll only have to show me once. I _can_ make my own bed to begin with. And remember that, though I canât cook, I _can_ keep my temper. Thatâs something. And I _never_ growl about the weather. Thatâs more. Oh, please, please! I never wanted anything so much in my lifeâand this floor is awfully hard.â âThereâs just one more thing,â said Priscilla resolutely. âYou, Phil, as all Redmond knows, entertain callers almost every evening. Now, at Pattyâs Place we canât do that. We have decided that we shall be at home to our friends on Friday evenings only. If you come with us youâll have to abide by that rule.â âWell, you donât think Iâll mind that, do you? Why, Iâm glad of it. I knew I should have had some such rule myself, but I hadnât enough decision to make it or stick to it. When I can shuffle off the responsibility on you it will be a real relief. If you wonât let me cast in my lot with you Iâll die of the disappointment and then Iâll come back and haunt you. Iâll camp on the very doorstep of Pattyâs Place and you wonât be able to go out or come in without falling over my spook.â Again Anne and Priscilla exchanged eloquent looks. âWell,â said Anne, âof course we canât promise to take you until weâve consulted with Stella; but I donât think sheâll object, and, as far as we are concerned, you may come and glad welcome.â âIf you get tired of our simple life you can leave us, and no questions asked,â added Priscilla. Phil sprang up, hugged them both jubilantly, and went on her way rejoicing. âI hope things will go right,â said Priscilla soberly. âWe must _make_ them go right,â avowed Anne. âI think Phil will fit into our âappy little âome very well.â âOh, Philâs a dear to rattle round with and be chums. And, of course, the more there are of us the easier it will be on our slim purses. But how will she be to live with? You have to summer and winter with any one before you know if sheâs _livable_ or not.â âOh, well, weâll all be put to the test, as far as that goes. And we must quit us like sensible folk, living and let live. Phil isnât selfish, though sheâs a little thoughtless, and I believe we will all get on beautifully in Pattyâs Place.â Chapter 11. The Round of Life. Anne was back in Avonlea with the luster of the Thorburn Scholarship on her brow. People told her she hadnât changed much, in a tone which hinted they were surprised and a little disappointed she hadnât. Avonlea had not changed, either. At least, so it seemed at first. But as Anne sat in the Green Gables pew, on the first Sunday after her return, and looked over the congregation, she saw several little changes which, all coming home to her at once, made her realize that time did not quite stand still, even in Avonlea. A new minister was in the pulpit. In the pews more than one familiar face was missing forever. Old âUncle Abe,â his prophesying over and done with, Mrs. Peter Sloane, who had sighed, it was to be hoped, for the last time, Timothy Cotton, who, as Mrs. Rachel Lynde said âhad actually managed to die at last after practicing at it for twenty years,â and old Josiah Sloane, whom nobody knew in his coffin because he had his whiskers neatly trimmed, were all sleeping in the little graveyard behind the church. And Billy Andrews was married to Nettie Blewett! They âappeared outâ that Sunday. When Billy, beaming with pride and happiness, showed his be-plumed and be-silked bride into the Harmon Andrewsâ pew, Anne dropped her lids to hide her dancing eyes. She recalled the stormy winter night of the Christmas holidays when Jane had proposed for Billy. He certainly had not broken his heart over his rejection. Anne wondered if Jane had also proposed to Nettie for him, or if he had mustered enough spunk to ask the fateful question himself. All the Andrews family seemed to share in his pride and pleasure, from Mrs. Harmon in the pew to Jane in the choir. Jane had resigned from the Avonlea school and intended to go West in the fall. âCanât get a beau in Avonlea, thatâs what,â said Mrs. Rachel Lynde scornfully. â_Says_ she thinks sheâll have better health out West. I never heard her health was poor before.â âJane is a nice girl,â Anne had said loyally. âShe never tried to attract attention, as some did.â âOh, she never chased the boys, if thatâs what you mean,â said Mrs. Rachel. âBut sheâd like to be married, just as much as anybody, thatâs what. What else would take her out West to some forsaken place whose only recommendation is that men are plenty and women scarce? Donât you tell me!â But it was not at Jane, Anne gazed that day in dismay and surprise. It was at Ruby Gillis, who sat beside her in the choir. What had happened to Ruby? She was even handsomer than ever; but her blue eyes were too bright and lustrous, and the color of her cheeks was hectically brilliant; besides, she was very thin; the hands that held her hymn-book were almost transparent in their delicacy. âIs Ruby Gillis ill?â Anne asked of Mrs. Lynde, as they went home from church. âRuby Gillis is dying of galloping consumption,â said Mrs. Lynde bluntly. âEverybody knows it except herself and her _family_. They wonât give in. If you ask _them_, sheâs perfectly well. She hasnât been able to teach since she had that attack of congestion in the winter, but she says sheâs going to teach again in the fall, and sheâs after the White Sands school. Sheâll be in her grave, poor girl, when White Sands school opens, thatâs what.â Anne listened in shocked silence. Ruby Gillis, her old school-chum, dying? Could it be possible? Of late years they had grown apart; but the old tie of school-girl intimacy was there, and made itself felt sharply in the tug the news gave at Anneâs heartstrings. Ruby, the brilliant, the merry, the coquettish! It was impossible to associate the thought of her with anything like death. She had greeted Anne with gay cordiality after church, and urged her to come up the next evening. âIâll be away Tuesday and Wednesday evenings,â she had whispered triumphantly. âThereâs a concert at Carmody and a party at White Sands. Herb Spencerâs going to take me. Heâs my _latest_. Be sure to come up tomorrow. Iâm dying for a good talk with you. I want to hear all about your doings at Redmond.â Anne knew that Ruby meant that she wanted to tell Anne all about her own recent flirtations, but she promised to go, and Diana offered to go with her. âIâve been wanting to go to see Ruby for a long while,â she told Anne, when they left Green Gables the next evening, âbut I really couldnât go alone. Itâs so awful to hear Ruby rattling on as she does, and pretending there is nothing the matter with her, even when she can hardly speak for coughing. Sheâs fighting so hard for her life, and yet she hasnât any chance at all, they say.â The girls walked silently down the red, twilit road. The robins were singing vespers in the high treetops, filling the golden air with their jubilant voices. The silver fluting of the frogs came from marshes and ponds, over fields where seeds were beginning to stir with life and thrill to the sunshine and rain that had drifted over them. The air was fragrant with the wild, sweet, wholesome smell of young raspberry copses. White mists were hovering in the silent hollows and violet stars were shining bluely on the brooklands. âWhat a beautiful sunset,â said Diana. âLook, Anne, itâs just like a land in itself, isnât it? That long, low back of purple cloud is the shore, and the clear sky further on is like a golden sea.â âIf we could sail to it in the moonshine boat Paul wrote of in his old compositionâyou remember?âhow nice it would be,â said Anne, rousing from her reverie. âDo you think we could find all our yesterdays there, Dianaâall our old springs and blossoms? The beds of flowers that Paul saw there are the roses that have bloomed for us in the past?â âDonât!â said Diana. âYou make me feel as if we were old women with everything in life behind us.â âI think Iâve almost felt as if we were since I heard about poor Ruby,â said Anne. âIf it is true that she is dying any other sad thing might be true, too.â âYou donât mind calling in at Elisha Wrightâs for a moment, do you?â asked Diana. âMother asked me to leave this little dish of jelly for Aunt Atossa.â âWho is Aunt Atossa?â âOh, havenât you heard? Sheâs Mrs. Samson Coates of SpencervaleâMrs. Elisha Wrightâs aunt. Sheâs fatherâs aunt, too. Her husband died last winter and she was left very poor and lonely, so the Wrights took her to live with them. Mother thought we ought to take her, but father put his foot down. Live with Aunt Atossa he would not.â âIs she so terrible?â asked Anne absently. âYouâll probably see what sheâs like before we can get away,â said Diana significantly. âFather says she has a face like a hatchetâit cuts the air. But her tongue is sharper still.â Late as it was Aunt Atossa was cutting potato sets in the Wright kitchen. She wore a faded old wrapper, and her gray hair was decidedly untidy. Aunt Atossa did not like being âcaught in a kilter,â so she went out of her way to be disagreeable. âOh, so youâre Anne Shirley?â she said, when Diana introduced Anne. âIâve heard of you.â Her tone implied that she had heard nothing good. âMrs. Andrews was telling me you were home. She said you had improved a good deal.â There was no doubt Aunt Atossa thought there was plenty of room for further improvement. She ceased not from cutting sets with much energy. âIs it any use to ask you to sit down?â she inquired sarcastically. âOf course, thereâs nothing very entertaining here for you. The rest are all away.â âMother sent you this little pot of rhubarb jelly,â said Diana pleasantly. âShe made it today and thought you might like some.â âOh, thanks,â said Aunt Atossa sourly. âI never fancy your motherâs jellyâshe always makes it too sweet. However, Iâll try to worry some down. My appetiteâs been dreadful poor this spring. Iâm far from well,â continued Aunt Atossa solemnly, âbut still I keep a-doing. People who canât work arenât wanted here. If it isnât too much trouble will you be condescending enough to set the jelly in the pantry? Iâm in a hurry to get these spuds done tonight. I suppose you two _ladies_ never do anything like this. Youâd be afraid of spoiling your hands.â âI used to cut potato sets before we rented the farm,â smiled Anne. âI do it yet,â laughed Diana. âI cut sets three days last week. Of course,â she added teasingly, âI did my hands up in lemon juice and kid gloves every night after it.â Aunt Atossa sniffed. âI suppose you got that notion out of some of those silly magazines you read so many of. I wonder your mother allows you. But she always spoiled you. We all thought when George married her she wouldnât be a suitable wife for him.â Aunt Atossa sighed heavily, as if all forebodings upon the occasion of George Barryâs marriage had been amply and darkly fulfilled. âGoing, are you?â she inquired, as the girls rose. âWell, I suppose you canât find much amusement talking to an old woman like me. Itâs such a pity the boys ainât home.â âWe want to run in and see Ruby Gillis a little while,â explained Diana. âOh, anything does for an excuse, of course,â said Aunt Atossa, amiably. âJust whip in and whip out before you have time to say how-do decently. Itâs college airs, I sâpose. Youâd be wiser to keep away from Ruby Gillis. The doctors say consumptionâs catching. I always knew Rubyâd get something, gadding off to Boston last fall for a visit. People who ainât content to stay home always catch something.â âPeople who donât go visiting catch things, too. Sometimes they even die,â said Diana solemnly. âThen they donât have themselves to blame for it,â retorted Aunt Atossa triumphantly. âI hear you are to be married in June, Diana.â âThere is no truth in that report,â said Diana, blushing. âWell, donât put it off too long,â said Aunt Atossa significantly. âYouâll fade soonâyouâre all complexion and hair. And the Wrights are terrible fickle. You ought to wear a hat, _Miss Shirley_. Your nose is freckling scandalous. My, but you _are_ redheaded! Well, I sâpose weâre all as the Lord made us! Give Marilla Cuthbert my respects. Sheâs never been to see me since I come to Avonlea, but I sâpose I oughtnât to complain. The Cuthberts always did think themselves a cut higher than any one else round here.â âOh, isnât she dreadful?â gasped Diana, as they escaped down the lane. âSheâs worse than Miss Eliza Andrews,â said Anne. âBut then think of living all your life with a name like Atossa! Wouldnât it sour almost any one? She should have tried to imagine her name was Cordelia. It might have helped her a great deal. It certainly helped me in the days when I didnât like _Anne_.â âJosie Pye will be just like her when she grows up,â said Diana. âJosieâs mother and Aunt Atossa are cousins, you know. Oh, dear, Iâm glad thatâs over. Sheâs so maliciousâshe seems to put a bad flavor in everything. Father tells such a funny story about her. One time they had a minister in Spencervale who was a very good, spiritual man but very deaf. He couldnât hear any ordinary conversation at all. Well, they used to have a prayer meeting on Sunday evenings, and all the church members present would get up and pray in turn, or say a few words on some Bible verse. But one evening Aunt Atossa bounced up. She didnât either pray or preach. Instead, she lit into everybody else in the church and gave them a fearful raking down, calling them right out by name and telling them how they all had behaved, and casting up all the quarrels and scandals of the past ten years. Finally she wound up by saying that she was disgusted with Spencervale church and she never meant to darken its door again, and she hoped a fearful judgment would come upon it. Then she sat down out of breath, and the minister, who hadnât heard a word she said, immediately remarked, in a very devout voice, âamen! The Lord grant our dear sisterâs prayer!â You ought to hear father tell the story.â âSpeaking of stories, Diana,â remarked Anne, in a significant, confidential tone, âdo you know that lately I have been wondering if I could write a short storyâa story that would be good enough to be published?â âWhy, of course you could,â said Diana, after she had grasped the amazing suggestion. âYou used to write perfectly thrilling stories years ago in our old Story Club.â âWell, I hardly meant one of that kind of stories,â smiled Anne. âIâve been thinking about it a little of late, but Iâm almost afraid to try, for, if I should fail, it would be too humiliating.â âI heard Priscilla say once that all Mrs. Morganâs first stories were rejected. But Iâm sure yours wouldnât be, Anne, for itâs likely editors have more sense nowadays.â âMargaret Burton, one of the Junior girls at Redmond, wrote a story last winter and it was published in the _Canadian Woman_. I really do think I could write one at least as good.â âAnd will you have it published in the _Canadian Woman?_â âI might try one of the bigger magazines first. It all depends on what kind of a story I write.â âWhat is it to be about?â âI donât know yet. I want to get hold of a good plot. I believe this is very necessary from an editorâs point of view. The only thing Iâve settled on is the heroineâs name. It is to be _Averil Lester_. Rather pretty, donât you think? Donât mention this to any one, Diana. I havenât told anybody but you and Mr. Harrison. _He_ wasnât very encouragingâhe said there was far too much trash written nowadays as it was, and heâd expected something better of me, after a year at college.â âWhat does Mr. Harrison know about it?â demanded Diana scornfully. They found the Gillis home gay with lights and callers. Leonard Kimball, of Spencervale, and Morgan Bell, of Carmody, were glaring at each other across the parlor. Several merry girls had dropped in. Ruby was dressed in white and her eyes and cheeks were very brilliant. She laughed and chattered incessantly, and after the other girls had gone she took Anne upstairs to display her new summer dresses. âIâve a blue silk to make up yet, but itâs a little heavy for summer wear. I think Iâll leave it until the fall. Iâm going to teach in White Sands, you know. How do you like my hat? That one you had on in church yesterday was real dinky. But I like something brighter for myself. Did you notice those two ridiculous boys downstairs? Theyâve both come determined to sit each other out. I donât care a single bit about either of them, you know. Herb Spencer is the one I like. Sometimes I really do think heâs _Mr. Right_. At Christmas I thought the Spencervale schoolmaster was that. But I found out something about him that turned me against him. He nearly went insane when I turned him down. I wish those two boys hadnât come tonight. I wanted to have a nice good talk with you, Anne, and tell you such heaps of things. You and I were always good chums, werenât we?â Ruby slipped her arm about Anneâs waist with a shallow little laugh. But just for a moment their eyes met, and, behind all the luster of Rubyâs, Anne saw something that made her heart ache. âCome up often, wonât you, Anne?â whispered Ruby. âCome aloneâI want you. âAre you feeling quite well, Ruby?â âMe! Why, Iâm perfectly well. I never felt better in my life. Of course, that congestion last winter pulled me down a little. But just see my color. I donât look much like an invalid, Iâm sure.â Rubyâs voice was almost sharp. She pulled her arm away from Anne, as if in resentment, and ran downstairs, where she was gayer than ever, apparently so much absorbed in bantering her two swains that Diana and Anne felt rather out of it and soon went away. Chapter 12. âAverilâs Atonementâ. âWhat are you dreaming of, Anne?â The two girls were loitering one evening in a fairy hollow of the brook. Ferns nodded in it, and little grasses were green, and wild pears hung finely-scented, white curtains around it. Anne roused herself from her reverie with a happy sigh. âI was thinking out my story, Diana.â âOh, have you really begun it?â cried Diana, all alight with eager interest in a moment. âYes, I have only a few pages written, but I have it all pretty well thought out. Iâve had such a time to get a suitable plot. None of the plots that suggested themselves suited a girl named _Averil_.â âCouldnât you have changed her name?â âNo, the thing was impossible. I tried to, but I couldnât do it, any more than I could change yours. _Averil_ was so real to me that no matter what other name I tried to give her I just thought of her as _Averil_ behind it all. But finally I got a plot that matched her. Then came the excitement of choosing names for all my characters. You have no idea how fascinating that is. Iâve lain awake for hours thinking over those names. The heroâs name is _Perceval Dalrymple_.â âHave you named _all_ the characters?â asked Diana wistfully. âIf you hadnât I was going to ask you to let me name oneâjust some unimportant person. Iâd feel as if I had a share in the story then.â âYou may name the little hired boy who lived with the _Lesters_,â conceded Anne. âHe is not very important, but he is the only one left unnamed.â âCall him _Raymond Fitzosborne_,â suggested Diana, who had a store of such names laid away in her memory, relics of the old âStory Club,â which she and Anne and Jane Andrews and Ruby Gillis had had in their schooldays. Anne shook her head doubtfully. âIâm afraid that is too aristocratic a name for a chore boy, Diana. I couldnât imagine a Fitzosborne feeding pigs and picking up chips, could you?â Diana didnât see why, if you had an imagination at all, you couldnât stretch it to that extent; but probably Anne knew best, and the chore boy was finally christened _Robert Ray_, to be called _Bobby_ should occasion require. âHow much do you suppose youâll get for it?â asked Diana. But Anne had not thought about this at all. She was in pursuit of fame, not filthy lucre, and her literary dreams were as yet untainted by mercenary considerations. âYouâll let me read it, wonât you?â pleaded Diana. âWhen it is finished Iâll read it to you and Mr. Harrison, and I shall want you to criticize it _severely_. No one else shall see it until it is published.â âHow are you going to end itâhappily or unhappily?â âIâm not sure. Iâd like it to end unhappily, because that would be so much more romantic. But I understand editors have a prejudice against sad endings. I heard Professor Hamilton say once that nobody but a genius should try to write an unhappy ending. And,â concluded Anne modestly, âIâm anything but a genius.â âOh I like happy endings best. Youâd better let him marry her,â said Diana, who, especially since her engagement to Fred, thought this was how every story should end. âBut you like to cry over stories?â âOh, yes, in the middle of them. But I like everything to come right at last.â âI must have one pathetic scene in it,â said Anne thoughtfully. âI might let _Robert Ray_ be injured in an accident and have a death scene.â âNo, you mustnât kill _Bobby_ off,â declared Diana, laughing. âHe belongs to me and I want him to live and flourish. Kill somebody else if you have to.â For the next fortnight Anne writhed or reveled, according to mood, in her literary pursuits. Now she would be jubilant over a brilliant idea, now despairing because some contrary character would _not_ behave properly. Diana could not understand this. â_Make_ them do as you want them to,â she said. âI canât,â mourned Anne. âAveril is such an unmanageable heroine. She _will_ do and say things I never meant her to. Then that spoils everything that went before and I have to write it all over again.â Finally, however, the story was finished, and Anne read it to Diana in the seclusion of the porch gable. She had achieved her âpathetic sceneâ without sacrificing _Robert Ray_, and she kept a watchful eye on Diana as she read it. Diana rose to the occasion and cried properly; but, when the end came, she looked a little disappointed. âWhy did you kill _Maurice Lennox?_â she asked reproachfully. âHe was the villain,â protested Anne. âHe had to be punished.â âI like him best of them all,â said unreasonable Diana. âWell, heâs dead, and heâll have to stay dead,â said Anne, rather resentfully. âIf I had let him live heâd have gone on persecuting _Averil_ and _Perceval_.â âYesâunless you had reformed him.â âThat wouldnât have been romantic, and, besides, it would have made the story too long.â âWell, anyway, itâs a perfectly elegant story, Anne, and will make you famous, of that Iâm sure. Have you got a title for it?â âOh, I decided on the title long ago. I call it _Averilâs atonement_. Doesnât that sound nice and alliterative? Now, Diana, tell me candidly, do you see any faults in my story?â âWell,â hesitated Diana, âthat part where _Averil_ makes the cake doesnât seem to me quite romantic enough to match the rest. Itâs just what anybody might do. Heroines shouldnât do cooking, _I_ think.â âWhy, that is where the humor comes in, and itâs one of the best parts of the whole story,â said Anne. And it may be stated that in this she was quite right. Diana prudently refrained from any further criticism, but Mr. Harrison was much harder to please. First he told her there was entirely too much description in the story. âCut out all those flowery passages,â he said unfeelingly. Anne had an uncomfortable conviction that Mr. Harrison was right, and she forced herself to expunge most of her beloved descriptions, though it took three re-writings before the story could be pruned down to please the fastidious Mr. Harrison. âIâve left out _all_ the descriptions but the sunset,â she said at last. âI simply _couldnât_ let it go. It was the best of them all.â âIt hasnât anything to do with the story,â said Mr. Harrison, âand you shouldnât have laid the scene among rich city people. What do you know of them? Why didnât you lay it right here in Avonleaâchanging the name, of course, or else Mrs. Rachel Lynde would probably think she was the heroine.â âOh, that would never have done,â protested Anne. âAvonlea is the dearest place in the world, but it isnât quite romantic enough for the scene of a story.â âI daresay thereâs been many a romance in Avonleaâand many a tragedy, too,â said Mr. Harrison drily. âBut your folks ainât like real folks anywhere. They talk too much and use too high-flown language. Thereâs one place where that _Dalrymple_ chap talks even on for two pages, and never lets the girl get a word in edgewise. If heâd done that in real life sheâd have pitched him.â âI donât believe it,â said Anne flatly. In her secret soul she thought that the beautiful, poetical things said to _Averil_ would win any girlâs heart completely. Besides, it was gruesome to hear of _Averil_, the stately, queen-like _Averil_, âpitchingâ any one. _Averil_ âdeclined her suitors.â âAnyhow,â resumed the merciless Mr. Harrison, âI donât see why _Maurice Lennox_ didnât get her. He was twice the man the other is. He did bad things, but he did them. Perceval hadnât time for anything but mooning.â âMooning.â That was even worse than âpitching!â â_Maurice Lennox_ was the villain,â said Anne indignantly. âI donât see why every one likes him better than _Perceval_.â âPerceval is too good. Heâs aggravating. Next time you write about a hero put a little spice of human nature in him.â â_Averil_ couldnât have married _Maurice_. He was bad.â âSheâd have reformed him. You can reform a man; you canât reform a jelly-fish, of course. Your story isnât badâitâs kind of interesting, Iâll admit. But youâre too young to write a story that would be worth while. Wait ten years.â Anne made up her mind that the next time she wrote a story she wouldnât ask anybody to criticize it. It was too discouraging. She would not read the story to Gilbert, although she told him about it. âIf it is a success youâll see it when it is published, Gilbert, but if it is a failure nobody shall ever see it.â Marilla knew nothing about the venture. In imagination Anne saw herself reading a story out of a magazine to Marilla, entrapping her into praise of itâfor in imagination all things are possibleâand then triumphantly announcing herself the author. One day Anne took to the Post Office a long, bulky envelope, addressed, with the delightful confidence of youth and inexperience, to the very biggest of the âbigâ magazines. Diana was as excited over it as Anne herself. âHow long do you suppose it will be before you hear from it?â she asked. âIt shouldnât be longer than a fortnight. Oh, how happy and proud I shall be if it is accepted!â âOf course it will be accepted, and they will likely ask you to send them more. You may be as famous as Mrs. Morgan some day, Anne, and then how proud Iâll be of knowing you,â said Diana, who possessed, at least, the striking merit of an unselfish admiration of the gifts and graces of her friends. A week of delightful dreaming followed, and then came a bitter awakening. One evening Diana found Anne in the porch gable, with suspicious-looking eyes. On the table lay a long envelope and a crumpled manuscript. âAnne, your story hasnât come back?â cried Diana incredulously. âYes, it has,â said Anne shortly. âWell, that editor must be crazy. What reason did he give?â âNo reason at all. There is just a printed slip saying that it wasnât found acceptable.â âI never thought much of that magazine, anyway,â said Diana hotly. âThe stories in it are not half as interesting as those in the _Canadian Woman_, although it costs so much more. I suppose the editor is prejudiced against any one who isnât a Yankee. Donât be discouraged, Anne. Remember how Mrs. Morganâs stories came back. Send yours to the _Canadian Woman_.â âI believe I will,â said Anne, plucking up heart. âAnd if it is published Iâll send that American editor a marked copy. But Iâll cut the sunset out. I believe Mr. Harrison was right.â Out came the sunset; but in spite of this heroic mutilation the editor of the _Canadian Woman_ sent Averilâs Atonement back so promptly that the indignant Diana declared that it couldnât have been read at all, and vowed she was going to stop her subscription immediately. Anne took this second rejection with the calmness of despair. She locked the story away in the garret trunk where the old Story Club tales reposed; but first she yielded to Dianaâs entreaties and gave her a copy. âThis is the end of my literary ambitions,â she said bitterly. She never mentioned the matter to Mr. Harrison, but one evening he asked her bluntly if her story had been accepted. âNo, the editor wouldnât take it,â she answered briefly. Mr. Harrison looked sidewise at the flushed, delicate profile. âWell, I suppose youâll keep on writing them,â he said encouragingly. âNo, I shall never try to write a story again,â declared Anne, with the hopeless finality of nineteen when a door is shut in its face. âI wouldnât give up altogether,â said Mr. Harrison reflectively. âIâd write a story once in a while, but I wouldnât pester editors with it. Iâd write of people and places like I knew, and Iâd make my characters talk everyday English; and Iâd let the sun rise and set in the usual quiet way without much fuss over the fact. If I had to have villains at all, Iâd give them a chance, AnneâIâd give them a chance. There are some terrible bad men in the world, I suppose, but youâd have to go a long piece to find themâthough Mrs. Lynde believes weâre all bad. But most of us have got a little decency somewhere in us. Keep on writing, Anne.â âNo. It was very foolish of me to attempt it. When Iâm through Redmond Iâll stick to teaching. I can teach. I canât write stories.â âItâll be time for you to be getting a husband when youâre through Redmond,â said Mr. Harrison. âI donât believe in putting marrying off too longâlike I did.â Anne got up and marched home. There were times when Mr. Harrison was really intolerable. âPitching,â âmooning,â and âgetting a husband.â Ow!! Chapter 13. The Way of Transgressors. Davy and Dora were ready for Sunday School. They were going alone, which did not often happen, for Mrs. Lynde always attended Sunday School. But Mrs. Lynde had twisted her ankle and was lame, so she was staying home this morning. The twins were also to represent the family at church, for Anne had gone away the evening before to spend Sunday with friends in Carmody, and Marilla had one of her headaches. Davy came downstairs slowly. Dora was waiting in the hall for him, having been made ready by Mrs. Lynde. Davy had attended to his own preparations. He had a cent in his pocket for the Sunday School collection, and a five-cent piece for the church collection; he carried his Bible in one hand and his Sunday School quarterly in the other; he knew his lesson and his Golden Text and his catechism question perfectly. Had he not studied themâperforceâin Mrs. Lyndeâs kitchen, all last Sunday afternoon? Davy, therefore, should have been in a placid frame of mind. As a matter of fact, despite text and catechism, he was inwardly as a ravening wolf. Mrs. Lynde limped out of her kitchen as he joined Dora. âAre you clean?â she demanded severely. âYesâall of me that shows,â Davy answered with a defiant scowl. Mrs. Rachel sighed. She had her suspicions about Davyâs neck and ears. But she knew that if she attempted to make a personal examination Davy would likely take to his heels and she could not pursue him today. âWell, be sure you behave yourselves,â she warned them. âDonât walk in the dust. Donât stop in the porch to talk to the other children. Donât squirm or wriggle in your places. Donât forget the Golden Text. Donât lose your collection or forget to put it in. Donât whisper at prayer time, and donât forget to pay attention to the sermon.â Davy deigned no response. He marched away down the lane, followed by the meek Dora. But his soul seethed within. Davy had suffered, or thought he had suffered, many things at the hands and tongue of Mrs. Rachel Lynde since she had come to Green Gables, for Mrs. Lynde could not live with anybody, whether they were nine or ninety, without trying to bring them up properly. And it was only the preceding afternoon that she had interfered to influence Marilla against allowing Davy to go fishing with the Timothy Cottons. Davy was still boiling over this. As soon as he was out of the lane Davy stopped and twisted his countenance into such an unearthly and terrific contortion that Dora, although she knew his gifts in that respect, was honestly alarmed lest he should never in the world be able to get it straightened out again. âDarn her,â exploded Davy. âOh, Davy, donât swear,â gasped Dora in dismay. ââDarnâ isnât swearingânot real swearing. And I donât care if it is,â retorted Davy recklessly. âWell, if you _must_ say dreadful words donât say them on Sunday,â pleaded Dora. Davy was as yet far from repentance, but in his secret soul he felt that, perhaps, he had gone a little too far. âIâm going to invent a swear word of my own,â he declared. âGod will punish you if you do,â said Dora solemnly. âThen I think God is a mean old scamp,â retorted Davy. âDoesnât He know a fellow must have some way of âspressing his feelings?â âDavy!!!â said Dora. She expected that Davy would be struck down dead on the spot. But nothing happened. âAnyway, I ainât going to stand any more of Mrs. Lyndeâs bossing,â spluttered Davy. âAnne and Marilla may have the right to boss me, but _she_ hasnât. Iâm going to do every single thing she told me not to do. You watch me.â In grim, deliberate silence, while Dora watched him with the fascination of horror, Davy stepped off the green grass of the roadside, ankle deep into the fine dust which four weeks of rainless weather had made on the road, and marched along in it, shuffling his feet viciously until he was enveloped in a hazy cloud. âThatâs the beginning,â he announced triumphantly. âAnd Iâm going to stop in the porch and talk as long as thereâs anybody there to talk to. Iâm going to squirm and wriggle and whisper, and Iâm going to say I donât know the Golden Text. And Iâm going to throw away both of my collections _right now_.â And Davy hurled cent and nickel over Mr. Barryâs fence with fierce delight. âSatan made you do that,â said Dora reproachfully. âHe didnât,â cried Davy indignantly. âI just thought it out for myself. And Iâve thought of something else. Iâm not going to Sunday School or church at all. Iâm going up to play with the Cottons. They told me yesterday they werenât going to Sunday School today, ’cause their mother was away and there was nobody to make them. Come along, Dora, weâll have a great time.â âI donât want to go,â protested Dora. âYouâve got to,â said Davy. âIf you donât come Iâll tell Marilla that Frank Bell kissed you in school last Monday.â âI couldnât help it. I didnât know he was going to,â cried Dora, blushing scarlet. âWell, you didnât slap him or seem a bit cross,â retorted Davy. âIâll tell her _that_, too, if you donât come. Weâll take the short cut up this field.â âIâm afraid of those cows,â protested poor Dora, seeing a prospect of escape. âThe very idea of your being scared of those cows,â scoffed Davy. âWhy, theyâre both younger than you.â âTheyâre bigger,â said Dora. âThey wonât hurt you. Come along, now. This is great. When I grow up I ainât going to bother going to church at all. I believe I can get to heaven by myself.â âYouâll go to the other place if you break the Sabbath day,â said unhappy Dora, following him sorely against her will. But Davy was not scaredâyet. Hell was very far off, and the delights of a fishing expedition with the Cottons were very near. He wished Dora had more spunk. She kept looking back as if she were going to cry every minute, and that spoiled a fellowâs fun. Hang girls, anyway. Davy did not say âdarnâ this time, even in thought. He was not sorryâyetâthat he had said it once, but it might be as well not to tempt the Unknown Powers too far on one day. The small Cottons were playing in their back yard, and hailed Davyâs appearance with whoops of delight. Pete, Tommy, Adolphus, and Mirabel Cotton were all alone. Their mother and older sisters were away. Dora was thankful Mirabel was there, at least. She had been afraid she would be alone in a crowd of boys. Mirabel was almost as bad as a boyâshe was so noisy and sunburned and reckless. But at least she wore dresses. âWeâve come to go fishing,â announced Davy. âWhoop,â yelled the Cottons. They rushed away to dig worms at once, Mirabel leading the van with a tin can. Dora could have sat down and cried. Oh, if only that hateful Frank Bell had never kissed her! Then she could have defied Davy, and gone to her beloved Sunday School. They dared not, of course, go fishing on the pond, where they would be seen by people going to church. They had to resort to the brook in the woods behind the Cotton house. But it was full of trout, and they had a glorious time that morningâat least the Cottons certainly had, and Davy seemed to have it. Not being entirely bereft of prudence, he had discarded boots and stockings and borrowed Tommy Cottonâs overalls. Thus accoutered, bog and marsh and undergrowth had no terrors for him. Dora was frankly and manifestly miserable. She followed the others in their peregrinations from pool to pool, clasping her Bible and quarterly tightly and thinking with bitterness of soul of her beloved class where she should be sitting that very moment, before a teacher she adored. Instead, here she was roaming the woods with those half-wild Cottons, trying to keep her boots clean and her pretty white dress free from rents and stains. Mirabel had offered the loan of an apron but Dora had scornfully refused. The trout bit as they always do on Sundays. In an hour the transgressors had all the fish they wanted, so they returned to the house, much to Doraâs relief. She sat primly on a hencoop in the yard while the others played an uproarious game of tag; and then they all climbed to the top of the pig-house roof and cut their initials on the saddleboard. The flat-roofed henhouse and a pile of straw beneath gave Davy another inspiration. They spent a splendid half hour climbing on the roof and diving off into the straw with whoops and yells. But even unlawful pleasures must come to an end. When the rumble of wheels over the pond bridge told that people were going home from church Davy knew they must go. He discarded Tommyâs overalls, resumed his own rightful attire, and turned away from his string of trout with a sigh. No use to think of taking them home. âWell, hadnât we a splendid time?â he demanded defiantly, as they went down the hill field. âI hadnât,â said Dora flatly. âAnd I donât believe you hadâreallyâeither,â she added, with a flash of insight that was not to be expected of her. âI had so,â cried Davy, but in the voice of one who doth protest too much. âNo wonder you hadnâtâjust sitting there like aâlike a mule.â âI ainât going to, âsociate with the Cottons,â said Dora loftily. âThe Cottons are all right,â retorted Davy. âAnd they have far better times than we have. They do just as they please and say just what they like before everybody. _I_âm going to do that, too, after this.â âThere are lots of things you wouldnât dare say before everybody,â averred Dora. âNo, there isnât.â âThere is, too. Would you,â demanded Dora gravely, âwould you say âtomcatâ before the minister?â This was a staggerer. Davy was not prepared for such a concrete example of the freedom of speech. But one did not have to be consistent with Dora. âOf course not,â he admitted sulkily. ââTomcatâ isnât a holy word. I wouldnât mention such an animal before a minister at all.â âBut if you had to?â persisted Dora. âIâd call it a Thomas pussy,â said Davy. â_I_ think âgentleman catâ would be more polite,â reflected Dora. â_You_ thinking!â retorted Davy with withering scorn. Davy was not feeling comfortable, though he would have died before he admitted it to Dora. Now that the exhilaration of truant delights had died away, his conscience was beginning to give him salutary twinges. After all, perhaps it would have been better to have gone to Sunday School and church. Mrs. Lynde might be bossy; but there was always a box of cookies in her kitchen cupboard and she was not stingy. At this inconvenient moment Davy remembered that when he had torn his new school pants the week before, Mrs. Lynde had mended them beautifully and never said a word to Marilla about them. But Davyâs cup of iniquity was not yet full. He was to discover that one sin demands another to cover it. They had dinner with Mrs. Lynde that day, and the first thing she asked Davy was, âWere all your class in Sunday School today?â âYesâm,â said Davy with a gulp. âAll were thereââcept one.â âDid you say your Golden Text and catechism?â âYesâm.â âDid you put your collection in?â âYesâm.â âWas Mrs. Malcolm MacPherson in church?â âI donât know.â This, at least, was the truth, thought wretched Davy. âWas the Ladiesâ Aid announced for next week?â âYesâmââquakingly. âWas prayer-meeting?â âIâI donât know.â â_You_ should know. You should listen more attentively to the announcements. What was Mr. Harveyâs text?â Davy took a frantic gulp of water and swallowed it and the last protest of conscience together. He glibly recited an old Golden Text learned several weeks ago. Fortunately Mrs. Lynde now stopped questioning him; but Davy did not enjoy his dinner. He could only eat one helping of pudding. âWhatâs the matter with you?â demanded justly astonished Mrs. Lynde. âAre you sick?â âNo,â muttered Davy. âYou look pale. Youâd better keep out of the sun this afternoon,â admonished Mrs. Lynde. âDo you know how many lies you told Mrs. Lynde?â asked Dora reproachfully, as soon as they were alone after dinner. Davy, goaded to desperation, turned fiercely. âI donât know and I donât care,â he said. âYou just shut up, Dora Keith.â Then poor Davy betook himself to a secluded retreat behind the woodpile to think over the way of transgressors. Green Gables was wrapped in darkness and silence when Anne reached home. She lost no time going to bed, for she was very tired and sleepy. There had been several Avonlea jollifications the preceding week, involving rather late hours. Anneâs head was hardly on her pillow before she was half asleep; but just then her door was softly opened and a pleading voice said, âAnne.â Anne sat up drowsily. âDavy, is that you? What is the matter?â A white-clad figure flung itself across the floor and on to the bed. âAnne,â sobbed Davy, getting his arms about her neck. âIâm awful glad youâre home. I couldnât go to sleep till Iâd told somebody.â âTold somebody what?â âHow misârubul I am.â âWhy are you miserable, dear?â ââCause I was so bad today, Anne. Oh, I was awful badâbadderân Iâve ever been yet.â âWhat did you do?â âOh, Iâm afraid to tell you. Youâll never like me again, Anne. I couldnât say my prayers tonight. I couldnât tell God what Iâd done. I was âshamed to have Him know.â âBut He knew anyway, Davy.â âThatâs what Dora said. But I thought pâraps He mightnât have noticed just at the time. Anyway, Iâd rather tell you first.â â_What_ is it you did?â Out it all came in a rush. âI run away from Sunday Schoolâand went fishing with the Cottonsâand I told ever so many whoppers to Mrs. Lyndeâoh! âmost half a dozenâandâandâIâI said a swear word, Anneâa pretty near swear word, anyhowâand I called God names.â There was silence. Davy didnât know what to make of it. Was Anne so shocked that she never would speak to him again? âAnne, what are you going to do to me?â he whispered. âNothing, dear. Youâve been punished already, I think.â âNo, I havenât. Nothingâs been done to me.â âYouâve been very unhappy ever since you did wrong, havenât you?â âYou bet!â said Davy emphatically. âThat was your conscience punishing you, Davy.â âWhatâs my conscience? I want to know.â âItâs something in you, Davy, that always tells you when you are doing wrong and makes you unhappy if you persist in doing it. Havenât you noticed that?â âYes, but I didnât know what it was. I wish I didnât have it. Iâd have lots more fun. Where is my conscience, Anne? I want to know. Is it in my stomach?â âNo, itâs in your soul,â answered Anne, thankful for the darkness, since gravity must be preserved in serious matters. âI sâpose I canât get clear of it then,â said Davy with a sigh. âAre you going to tell Marilla and Mrs. Lynde on me, Anne?â âNo, dear, Iâm not going to tell any one. You are sorry you were naughty, arenât you?â âYou bet!â âAnd youâll never be bad like that again.â âNo, butââ added Davy cautiously, âI might be bad some other way.â âYou wonât say naughty words, or run away on Sundays, or tell falsehoods to cover up your sins?â âNo. It doesnât pay,â said Davy. âWell, Davy, just tell God you are sorry and ask Him to forgive you.â âHave _you_ forgiven me, Anne?â âYes, dear.â âThen,â said Davy joyously, âI donât care much whether God does or not.â âDavy!â âOhâIâll ask HimâIâll ask Him,â said Davy quickly, scrambling off the bed, convinced by Anneâs tone that he must have said something dreadful. âI donât mind asking Him, Anne.âPlease, God, Iâm awful sorry I behaved bad today and Iâll try to be good on Sundays always and please forgive me.âThere now, Anne.â âWell, now, run off to bed like a good boy.â âAll right. Say, I donât feel misârubul any more. I feel fine. Good night.â âGood night.â Anne slipped down on her pillows with a sigh of relief. Ohâhow sleepyâshe was! In another secondâ âAnne!â Davy was back again by her bed. Anne dragged her eyes open. âWhat is it now, dear?â she asked, trying to keep a note of impatience out of her voice. âAnne, have you ever noticed how Mr. Harrison spits? Do you sâpose, if I practice hard, I can learn to spit just like him?â Anne sat up. âDavy Keith,â she said, âgo straight to your bed and donât let me catch you out of it again tonight! Go, now!â Davy went, and stood not upon the order of his going. Chapter 14. The Summons. Anne was sitting with Ruby Gillis in the Gillisâ garden after the day had crept lingeringly through it and was gone. It had been a warm, smoky summer afternoon. The world was in a splendor of out-flowering. The idle valleys were full of hazes. The woodways were pranked with shadows and the fields with the purple of the asters. Anne had given up a moonlight drive to the White Sands beach that she might spend the evening with Ruby. She had so spent many evenings that summer, although she often wondered what good it did any one, and sometimes went home deciding that she could not go again. Ruby grew paler as the summer waned; the White Sands school was given upââher father thought it better that she shouldnât teach till New Yearâsââand the fancy work she loved oftener and oftener fell from hands grown too weary for it. But she was always gay, always hopeful, always chattering and whispering of her beaux, and their rivalries and despairs. It was this that made Anneâs visits hard for her. What had once been silly or amusing was gruesome, now; it was death peering through a wilful mask of life. Yet Ruby seemed to cling to her, and never let her go until she had promised to come again soon. Mrs. Lynde grumbled about Anneâs frequent visits, and declared she would catch consumption; even Marilla was dubious. âEvery time you go to see Ruby you come home looking tired out,â she said. âItâs so very sad and dreadful,â said Anne in a low tone. âRuby doesnât seem to realize her condition in the least. And yet I somehow feel she needs helpâcraves itâand I want to give it to her and canât. All the time Iâm with her I feel as if I were watching her struggle with an invisible foeâtrying to push it back with such feeble resistance as she has. That is why I come home tired.â But tonight Anne did not feel this so keenly. Ruby was strangely quiet. She said not a word about parties and drives and dresses and âfellows.â She lay in the hammock, with her untouched work beside her, and a white shawl wrapped about her thin shoulders. Her long yellow braids of hairâhow Anne had envied those beautiful braids in old schooldays!âlay on either side of her. She had taken the pins outâthey made her head ache, she said. The hectic flush was gone for the time, leaving her pale and childlike. The moon rose in the silvery sky, empearling the clouds around her. Below, the pond shimmered in its hazy radiance. Just beyond the Gillis homestead was the church, with the old graveyard beside it. The moonlight shone on the white stones, bringing them out in clear-cut relief against the dark trees behind. âHow strange the graveyard looks by moonlight!â said Ruby suddenly. âHow ghostly!â she shuddered. âAnne, it wonât be long now before Iâll be lying over there. You and Diana and all the rest will be going about, full of lifeâand Iâll be thereâin the old graveyardâdead!â The surprise of it bewildered Anne. For a few moments she could not speak. âYou know itâs so, donât you?â said Ruby insistently. âYes, I know,â answered Anne in a low tone. âDear Ruby, I know.â âEverybody knows it,â said Ruby bitterly. âI know itâIâve known it all summer, though I wouldnât give in. And, oh, Anneââshe reached out and caught Anneâs hand pleadingly, impulsivelyââI donât want to die. Iâm _afraid_ to die.â âWhy should you be afraid, Ruby?â asked Anne quietly. âBecauseâbecauseâoh, Iâm not afraid but that Iâll go to heaven, Anne. Iâm a church member. Butâitâll be all so different. I thinkâand thinkâand I get so frightenedâandâandâhomesick. Heaven must be very beautiful, of course, the Bible says soâbut, Anne, _it wonât be what âve been used to_.â Through Anneâs mind drifted an intrusive recollection of a funny story she had heard Philippa Gordon tellâthe story of some old man who had said very much the same thing about the world to come. It had sounded funny thenâshe remembered how she and Priscilla had laughed over it. But it did not seem in the least humorous now, coming from Rubyâs pale, trembling lips. It was sad, tragicâand true! Heaven could not be what Ruby had been used to. There had been nothing in her gay, frivolous life, her shallow ideals and aspirations, to fit her for that great change, or make the life to come seem to her anything but alien and unreal and undesirable. Anne wondered helplessly what she could say that would help her. Could she say anything? âI think, Ruby,â she began hesitatinglyâfor it was difficult for Anne to speak to any one of the deepest thoughts of her heart, or the new ideas that had vaguely begun to shape themselves in her mind, concerning the great mysteries of life here and hereafter, superseding her old childish conceptions, and it was hardest of all to speak of them to such as Ruby GillisââI think, perhaps, we have very mistaken ideas about heavenâwhat it is and what it holds for us. I donât think it can be so very different from life here as most people seem to think. I believe weâll just go on living, a good deal as we live hereâand be _ourselves_ just the sameâonly it will be easier to be good and toâfollow the highest. All the hindrances and perplexities will be taken away, and we shall see clearly. Donât be afraid, Ruby.â âI canât help it,â said Ruby pitifully. âEven if what you say about heaven is trueâand you canât be sureâit may be only that imagination of yoursâit wonât be _just_ the same. It _canât_ be. I want to go on living _here_. Iâm so young, Anne. I havenât had my life. Iâve fought so hard to liveâand it isnât any useâI have to dieâand leave _everything_ I care for.â Anne sat in a pain that was almost intolerable. She could not tell comforting falsehoods; and all that Ruby said was so horribly true. She _was_ leaving everything she cared for. She had laid up her treasures on earth only; she had lived solely for the little things of lifeâthe things that passâforgetting the great things that go onward into eternity, bridging the gulf between the two lives and making of death a mere passing from one dwelling to the otherâfrom twilight to unclouded day. God would take care of her thereâAnne believedâshe would learnâbut now it was no wonder her soul clung, in blind helplessness, to the only things she knew and loved. Ruby raised herself on her arm and lifted up her bright, beautiful blue eyes to the moonlit skies. âI want to live,â she said, in a trembling voice. âI want to live like other girls. IâI want to be married, Anneâandâandâhave little children. You know I always loved babies, Anne. I couldnât say this to any one but you. I know you understand. And then poor Herbâheâhe loves me and I love him, Anne. The others meant nothing to me, but _he_ doesâand if I could live I would be his wife and be so happy. Oh, Anne, itâs hard.â Ruby sank back on her pillows and sobbed convulsively. Anne pressed her hand in an agony of sympathyâsilent sympathy, which perhaps helped Ruby more than broken, imperfect words could have done; for presently she grew calmer and her sobs ceased. âIâm glad Iâve told you this, Anne,â she whispered. âIt has helped me just to say it all out. Iâve wanted to all summerâevery time you came. I wanted to talk it over with youâbut I _couldnât_. It seemed as if it would make death so _sure_ if I _said_ I was going to die, or if any one else said it or hinted it. I wouldnât say it, or even think it. In the daytime, when people were around me and everything was cheerful, it wasnât so hard to keep from thinking of it. But in the night, when I couldnât sleepâit was so dreadful, Anne. I couldnât get away from it then. Death just came and stared me in the face, until I got so frightened I could have screamed. âBut you wonât be frightened any more, Ruby, will you? Youâll be brave, and believe that all is going to be well with you.â âIâll try. Iâll think over what you have said, and try to believe it. And youâll come up as often as you can, wonât you, Anne?â âYes, dear.â âItâit wonât be very long now, Anne. I feel sure of that. And Iâd rather have you than any one else. I always liked you best of all the girls I went to school with. You were never jealous, or mean, like some of them were. Poor Em White was up to see me yesterday. You remember Em and I were such chums for three years when we went to school? And then we quarrelled the time of the school concert. Weâve never spoken to each other since. Wasnât it silly? Anything like that seems silly _now_. But Em and I made up the old quarrel yesterday. She said sheâd have spoken years ago, only she thought I wouldnât. And I never spoke to her because I was sure she wouldnât speak to me. Isnât it strange how people misunderstand each other, Anne?â âMost of the trouble in life comes from misunderstanding, I think,â said Anne. âI must go now, Ruby. Itâs getting lateâand you shouldnât be out in the damp.â âYouâll come up soon again.â âYes, very soon. And if thereâs anything I can do to help you Iâll be so glad.â âI know. You _have_ helped me already. Nothing seems quite so dreadful now. Good night, Anne.â âGood night, dear.â Anne walked home very slowly in the moonlight. The evening had changed something for her. Life held a different meaning, a deeper purpose. On the surface it would go on just the same; but the deeps had been stirred. It must not be with her as with poor butterfly Ruby. When she came to the end of one life it must not be to face the next with the shrinking terror of something wholly differentâsomething for which accustomed thought and ideal and aspiration had unfitted her. The little things of life, sweet and excellent in their place, must not be the things lived for; the highest must be sought and followed; the life of heaven must be begun here on earth. That good night in the garden was for all time. Anne never saw Ruby in life again. The next night the A.V.I.S. gave a farewell party to Jane Andrews before her departure for the West. And, while light feet danced and bright eyes laughed and merry tongues chattered, there came a summons to a soul in Avonlea that might not be disregarded or evaded. The next morning the word went from house to house that Ruby Gillis was dead. She had died in her sleep, painlessly and calmly, and on her face was a smileâas if, after all, death had come as a kindly friend to lead her over the threshold, instead of the grisly phantom she had dreaded. Mrs. Rachel Lynde said emphatically after the funeral that Ruby Gillis was the handsomest corpse she ever laid eyes on. Her loveliness, as she lay, white-clad, among the delicate flowers that Anne had placed about her, was remembered and talked of for years in Avonlea. Ruby had always been beautiful; but her beauty had been of the earth, earthy; it had had a certain insolent quality in it, as if it flaunted itself in the beholderâs eye; spirit had never shone through it, intellect had never refined it. But death had touched it and consecrated it, bringing out delicate modelings and purity of outline never seen beforeâdoing what life and love and great sorrow and deep womanhood joys might have done for Ruby. Anne, looking down through a mist of tears, at her old playfellow, thought she saw the face God had meant Ruby to have, and remembered it so always. Mrs. Gillis called Anne aside into a vacant room before the funeral procession left the house, and gave her a small packet. âI want you to have this,â she sobbed. âRuby would have liked you to have it. Itâs the embroidered centerpiece she was working at. It isnât quite finishedâthe needle is sticking in it just where her poor little fingers put it the last time she laid it down, the afternoon before she died.â âThereâs always a piece of unfinished work left,â said Mrs. Lynde, with tears in her eyes. âBut I suppose thereâs always some one to finish âHow difficult it is to realize that one we have always known can really be dead,â said Anne, as she and Diana walked home. âRuby is the first of our schoolmates to go. One by one, sooner or later, all the rest of us must follow.â âYes, I suppose so,â said Diana uncomfortably. She did not want to talk of that. She would have preferred to have discussed the details of the funeralâthe splendid white velvet casket Mr. Gillis had insisted on having for Rubyââthe Gillises must always make a splurge, even at funerals,â quoth Mrs. Rachel LyndeâHerb Spencerâs sad face, the uncontrolled, hysteric grief of one of Rubyâs sistersâbut Anne would not talk of these things. She seemed wrapped in a reverie in which Diana felt lonesomely that she had neither lot nor part. âRuby Gillis was a great girl to laugh,â said Davy suddenly. âWill she laugh as much in heaven as she did in Avonlea, Anne? I want to know.â âYes, I think she will,â said Anne. âOh, Anne,â protested Diana, with a rather shocked smile. âWell, why not, Diana?â asked Anne seriously. âDo you think weâll never laugh in heaven?â âOhâIâI donât knowâ floundered Diana. âIt doesnât seem just right, somehow. You know itâs rather dreadful to laugh in church.â âBut heaven wonât be like churchâall the time,â said Anne. âI hope it ainât,â said Davy emphatically. âIf it is I donât want to go. Church is awful dull. Anyway, I donât mean to go for ever so long. I mean to live to be a hundred years old, like Mr. Thomas Blewett of White Sands. He says heâs lived so long ’cause he always smoked tobacco and it killed all the germs. Can I smoke tobacco pretty soon, Anne?â âNo, Davy, I hope youâll never use tobacco,â said Anne absently. âWhatâll you feel like if the germs kill me then?â demanded Davy. Chapter 15. A Dream Turned Upside Down. âJust one more week and we go back to Redmond,â said Anne. She was happy at the thought of returning to work, classes and Redmond friends. Pleasing visions were also being woven around Pattyâs Place. There was a warm pleasant sense of home in the thought of it, even though she had never lived there. But the summer had been a very happy one, tooâa time of glad living with summer suns and skies, a time of keen delight in wholesome things; a time of renewing and deepening of old friendships; a time in which she had learned to live more nobly, to work more patiently, to play more heartily. âAll life lessons are not learned at college,â she thought. âLife teaches them everywhere.â But alas, the final week of that pleasant vacation was spoiled for Anne, by one of those impish happenings which are like a dream turned upside down. âBeen writing any more stories lately?â inquired Mr. Harrison genially one evening when Anne was taking tea with him and Mrs. Harrison. âNo,â answered Anne, rather crisply. âWell, no offense meant. Mrs. Hiram Sloane told me the other day that a big envelope addressed to the Rollings Reliable Baking Powder Company of Montreal had been dropped into the post office box a month ago, and she suspicioned that somebody was trying for the prize theyâd offered for the best story that introduced the name of their baking powder. She said it wasnât addressed in your writing, but I thought maybe it was you.â âIndeed, no! I saw the prize offer, but Iâd never dream of competing for it. I think it would be perfectly disgraceful to write a story to advertise a baking powder. It would be almost as bad as Judson Parkerâs patent medicine fence.â So spake Anne loftily, little dreaming of the valley of humiliation awaiting her. That very evening Diana popped into the porch gable, bright-eyed and rosy cheeked, carrying a letter. âOh, Anne, hereâs a letter for you. I was at the office, so I thought Iâd bring it along. Do open it quick. If it is what I believe it is I shall just be wild with delight.â Anne, puzzled, opened the letter and glanced over the typewritten contents. Miss Anne Shirley, Green Gables, Avonlea, P.E. Island. âDEAR MADAM: We have much pleasure in informing you that your charming story âAverilâs Atonementâ has won the prize of twenty-five dollars offered in our recent competition. We enclose the check herewith. We are arranging for the publication of the story in several prominent Canadian newspapers, and we also intend to have it printed in pamphlet form for distribution among our patrons. Thanking you for the interest you have shown in our enterprise, âWe remain, âYours very truly, âTHE ROLLINGS RELIABLE BAKING POWDER CO.â âI donât understand,â said Anne, blankly. Diana clapped her hands. âOh, I _knew_ it would win the prizeâI was sure of it. _I_ sent your story into the competition, Anne. âDianaâBarry!â âYes, I did,â said Diana gleefully, perching herself on the bed. âWhen I saw the offer I thought of your story in a minute, and at first I thought Iâd ask you to send it in. But then I was afraid you wouldnâtâyou had so little faith left in it. So I just decided Iâd send the copy you gave me, and say nothing about it. Then, if it didnât win the prize, youâd never know and you wouldnât feel badly over it, because the stories that failed were not to be returned, and if it did youâd have such a delightful surprise.â Diana was not the most discerning of mortals, but just at this moment it struck her that Anne was not looking exactly overjoyed. The surprise was there, beyond doubtâbut where was the delight? âWhy, Anne, you donât seem a bit pleased!â she exclaimed. Anne instantly manufactured a smile and put it on. âOf course I couldnât be anything but pleased over your unselfish wish to give me pleasure,â she said slowly. âBut you knowâIâm so amazedâI canât realize itâand I donât understand. There wasnât a word in my story aboutâaboutââ Anne choked a little over the wordââbaking powder.â âOh, _I_ put that in,â said Diana, reassured. âIt was as easy as winkâand of course my experience in our old Story Club helped me. You know the scene where Averil makes the cake? Well, I just stated that she used the Rollings Reliable in it, and that was why it turned out so well; and then, in the last paragraph, where _Perceval_ clasps _Averil_ in his arms and says, âSweetheart, the beautiful coming years will bring us the fulfilment of our home of dreams,â I added, âin which we will never use any baking powder except Rollings Reliable.ââ âOh,â gasped poor Anne, as if some one had dashed cold water on her. âAnd youâve won the twenty-five dollars,â continued Diana jubilantly. âWhy, I heard Priscilla say once that the _Canadian Woman_ only pays five dollars for a story!â Anne held out the hateful pink slip in shaking fingers. âI canât take itâitâs yours by right, Diana. You sent the story in and made the alterations. IâI would certainly never have sent it. So you must take the check.â âIâd like to see myself,â said Diana scornfully. âWhy, what I did wasnât any trouble. The honor of being a friend of the prizewinner is enough for me. Well, I must go. I should have gone straight home from the post office for we have company. But I simply had to come and hear the news. Iâm so glad for your sake, Anne.â Anne suddenly bent forward, put her arms about Diana, and kissed her cheek. âI think you are the sweetest and truest friend in the world, Diana,â she said, with a little tremble in her voice, âand I assure you I appreciate the motive of what youâve done.â Diana, pleased and embarrassed, got herself away, and poor Anne, after flinging the innocent check into her bureau drawer as if it were blood-money, cast herself on her bed and wept tears of shame and outraged sensibility. Oh, she could never live this downânever! Gilbert arrived at dusk, brimming over with congratulations, for he had called at Orchard Slope and heard the news. But his congratulations died on his lips at sight of Anneâs face. âWhy, Anne, what is the matter? I expected to find you radiant over winning Rollings Reliable prize. Good for you!â âOh, Gilbert, not you,â implored Anne, in an _et-tu Brute_ tone. âI thought _you_ would understand. Canât you see how awful it is?â âI must confess I canât. _What_ is wrong?â âEverything,â moaned Anne. âI feel as if I were disgraced forever. What do you think a mother would feel like if she found her child tattooed over with a baking powder advertisement? I feel just the same. I loved my poor little story, and I wrote it out of the best that was in me. And it is _sacrilege_ to have it degraded to the level of a baking powder advertisement. Donât you remember what Professor Hamilton used to tell us in the literature class at Queenâs? He said we were never to write a word for a low or unworthy motive, but always to cling to the very highest ideals. What will he think when he hears Iâve written a story to advertise Rollings Reliable? And, oh, when it gets out at Redmond! Think how Iâll be teased and laughed at!â âThat you wonât,â said Gilbert, wondering uneasily if it were that confounded Juniorâs opinion in particular over which Anne was worried. âThe Reds will think just as I thoughtâthat you, being like nine out of ten of us, not overburdened with worldly wealth, had taken this way of earning an honest penny to help yourself through the year. I donât see that thereâs anything low or unworthy about that, or anything ridiculous either. One would rather write masterpieces of literature no doubtâbut meanwhile board and tuition fees have to be paid.â This commonsense, matter-of-fact view of the case cheered Anne a little. At least it removed her dread of being laughed at, though the deeper hurt of an outraged ideal remained. Chapter 16. Adjusted Relationships. âItâs the homiest spot I ever sawâitâs homier than home,â avowed Philippa Gordon, looking about her with delighted eyes. They were all assembled at twilight in the big living-room at Pattyâs PlaceâAnne and Priscilla, Phil and Stella, Aunt Jamesina, Rusty, Joseph, the Sarah-Cat, and Gog and Magog. The firelight shadows were dancing over the walls; the cats were purring; and a huge bowl of hothouse chrysanthemums, sent to Phil by one of the victims, shone through the golden gloom like creamy moons. It was three weeks since they had considered themselves settled, and already all believed the experiment would be a success. The first fortnight after their return had been a pleasantly exciting one; they had been busy setting up their household goods, organizing their little establishment, and adjusting different opinions. Anne was not over-sorry to leave Avonlea when the time came to return to college. The last few days of her vacation had not been pleasant. Her prize story had been published in the Island papers; and Mr. William Blair had, upon the counter of his store, a huge pile of pink, green and yellow pamphlets, containing it, one of which he gave to every customer. He sent a complimentary bundle to Anne, who promptly dropped them all in the kitchen stove. Her humiliation was the consequence of her own ideals only, for Avonlea folks thought it quite splendid that she should have won the prize. Her many friends regarded her with honest admiration; her few foes with scornful envy. Josie Pye said she believed Anne Shirley had just copied the story; she was sure she remembered reading it in a paper years before. The Sloanes, who had found out or guessed that Charlie had been âturned down,â said they didnât think it was much to be proud of; almost any one could have done it, if she tried. Aunt Atossa told Anne she was very sorry to hear she had taken to writing novels; nobody born and bred in Avonlea would do it; that was what came of adopting orphans from goodness knew where, with goodness knew what kind of parents. Even Mrs. Rachel Lynde was darkly dubious about the propriety of writing fiction, though she was almost reconciled to it by that twenty-five dollar check. âIt is perfectly amazing, the price they pay for such lies, thatâs what,â she said, half-proudly, half-severely. All things considered, it was a relief when going-away time came. And it was very jolly to be back at Redmond, a wise, experienced Soph with hosts of friends to greet on the merry opening day. Pris and Stella and Gilbert were there, Charlie Sloane, looking more important than ever a Sophomore looked before, Phil, with the Alec-and-Alonzo question still unsettled, and Moody Spurgeon MacPherson. Moody Spurgeon had been teaching school ever since leaving Queenâs, but his mother had concluded it was high time he gave it up and turned his attention to learning how to be a minister. Poor Moody Spurgeon fell on hard luck at the very beginning of his college career. Half a dozen ruthless Sophs, who were among his fellow-boarders, swooped down upon him one night and shaved half of his head. In this guise the luckless Moody Spurgeon had to go about until his hair grew again. He told Anne bitterly that there were times when he had his doubts as to whether he was really called to be a minister. Aunt Jamesina did not come until the girls had Pattyâs Place ready for her. Miss Patty had sent the key to Anne, with a letter in which she said Gog and Magog were packed in a box under the spare-room bed, but might be taken out when wanted; in a postscript she added that she hoped the girls would be careful about putting up pictures. The living room had been newly papered five years before and she and Miss Maria did not want any more holes made in that new paper than was absolutely necessary. For the rest she trusted everything to Anne. How those girls enjoyed putting their nest in order! As Phil said, it was almost as good as getting married. You had the fun of homemaking without the bother of a husband. All brought something with them to adorn or make comfortable the little house. Pris and Phil and Stella had knick-knacks and pictures galore, which latter they proceeded to hang according to taste, in reckless disregard of Miss Pattyâs new paper. âWeâll putty the holes up when we leave, dearâsheâll never know,â they said to protesting Anne. Diana had given Anne a pine needle cushion and Miss Ada had given both her and Priscilla a fearfully and wonderfully embroidered one. Marilla had sent a big box of preserves, and darkly hinted at a hamper for Thanksgiving, and Mrs. Lynde gave Anne a patchwork quilt and loaned her five more. âYou take them,â she said authoritatively. âThey might as well be in use as packed away in that trunk in the garret for moths to gnaw.â No moths would ever have ventured near those quilts, for they reeked of mothballs to such an extent that they had to be hung in the orchard of Pattyâs Place a full fortnight before they could be endured indoors. Verily, aristocratic Spofford Avenue had rarely beheld such a display. The gruff old millionaire who lived ânext doorâ came over and wanted to buy the gorgeous red and yellow âtulip-patternâ one which Mrs. Rachel had given Anne. He said his mother used to make quilts like that, and by Jove, he wanted one to remind him of her. Anne would not sell it, much to his disappointment, but she wrote all about it to Mrs. Lynde. That highly-gratified lady sent word back that she had one just like it to spare, so the tobacco king got his quilt after all, and insisted on having it spread on his bed, to the disgust of his fashionable wife. Mrs. Lyndeâs quilts served a very useful purpose that winter. Pattyâs Place for all its many virtues, had its faults also. It was really a rather cold house; and when the frosty nights came the girls were very glad to snuggle down under Mrs. Lyndeâs quilts, and hoped that the loan of them might be accounted unto her for righteousness. Anne had the blue room she had coveted at sight. Priscilla and Stella had the large one. Phil was blissfully content with the little one over the kitchen; and Aunt Jamesina was to have the downstairs one off the living-room. Rusty at first slept on the doorstep. Anne, walking home from Redmond a few days after her return, became aware that the people that she met surveyed her with a covert, indulgent smile. Anne wondered uneasily what was the matter with her. Was her hat crooked? Was her belt loose? Craning her head to investigate, Anne, for the first time, saw Rusty. Trotting along behind her, close to her heels, was quite the most forlorn specimen of the cat tribe she had ever beheld. The animal was well past kitten-hood, lank, thin, disreputable looking. Pieces of both ears were lacking, one eye was temporarily out of repair, and one jowl ludicrously swollen. As for color, if a once black cat had been well and thoroughly singed the result would have resembled the hue of this waifâs thin, draggled, unsightly fur. Anne âshooed,â but the cat would not âshoo.â As long as she stood he sat back on his haunches and gazed at her reproachfully out of his one good eye; when she resumed her walk he followed. Anne resigned herself to his company until she reached the gate of Pattyâs Place, which she coldly shut in his face, fondly supposing she had seen the last of him. But when, fifteen minutes later, Phil opened the door, there sat the rusty-brown cat on the step. More, he promptly darted in and sprang upon Anneâs lap with a half-pleading, half-triumphant âmiaow.â âAnne,â said Stella severely, âdo you own that animal?â âNo, I do _not_,â protested disgusted Anne. âThe creature followed me home from somewhere. I couldnât get rid of him. Ugh, get down. I like decent cats reasonably well; but I donât like beasties of your complexion.â Pussy, however, refused to get down. He coolly curled up in Anneâs lap and began to purr. âHe has evidently adopted you,â laughed Priscilla. âI wonât BE adopted,â said Anne stubbornly. âThe poor creature is starving,â said Phil pityingly. âWhy, his bones are almost coming through his skin.â âWell, Iâll give him a square meal and then he must return to whence he came,â said Anne resolutely. The cat was fed and put out. In the morning he was still on the doorstep. On the doorstep he continued to sit, bolting in whenever the door was opened. No coolness of welcome had the least effect on him; of nobody save Anne did he take the least notice. Out of compassion the girls fed him; but when a week had passed they decided that something must be done. The catâs appearance had improved. His eye and cheek had resumed their normal appearance; he was not quite so thin; and he had been seen washing his face. âBut for all that we canât keep him,â said Stella. âAunt Jimsie is coming next week and she will bring the Sarah-cat with her. We canât keep two cats; and if we did this Rusty Coat would fight all the time with the Sarah-cat. Heâs a fighter by nature. He had a pitched battle last evening with the tobacco-kingâs cat and routed him, horse, foot and artillery.â âWe must get rid of him,â agreed Anne, looking darkly at the subject of their discussion, who was purring on the hearth rug with an air of lamb-like meekness. âBut the question isâhow? How can four unprotected females get rid of a cat who wonât be got rid of?â âWe must chloroform him,â said Phil briskly. âThat is the most humane way.â âWho of us knows anything about chloroforming a cat?â demanded Anne gloomily. âI do, honey. Itâs one of my fewâsadly fewâuseful accomplishments. Iâve disposed of several at home. You take the cat in the morning and give him a good breakfast. Then you take an old burlap bagâthereâs one in the back porchâput the cat on it and turn over him a wooden box. Then take a two-ounce bottle of chloroform, uncork it, and slip it under the edge of the box. Put a heavy weight on top of the box and leave it till evening. The cat will be dead, curled up peacefully as if he were asleep. No painâno struggle.â âIt sounds easy,â said Anne dubiously. âIt _is_ easy. Just leave it to me. Iâll see to it,â said Phil reassuringly. Accordingly the chloroform was procured, and the next morning Rusty was lured to his doom. He ate his breakfast, licked his chops, and climbed into Anneâs lap. Anneâs heart misgave her. This poor creature loved herâtrusted her. How could she be a party to this destruction? âHere, take him,â she said hastily to Phil. âI feel like a murderess.â âHe wonât suffer, you know,â comforted Phil, but Anne had fled. The fatal deed was done in the back porch. Nobody went near it that day. But at dusk Phil declared that Rusty must be buried. âPris and Stella must dig his grave in the orchard,â declared Phil, âand Anne must come with me to lift the box off. Thatâs the part I always hate.â The two conspirators tip-toed reluctantly to the back porch. Phil gingerly lifted the stone she had put on the box. Suddenly, faint but distinct, sounded an unmistakable mew under the box. âHeâhe isnât dead,â gasped Anne, sitting blankly down on the kitchen doorstep. âHe must be,â said Phil incredulously. Another tiny mew proved that he wasnât. The two girls stared at each other. âWhat will we do?â questioned Anne. âWhy in the world donât you come?â demanded Stella, appearing in the doorway. âWeâve got the grave ready. âWhat silent still and silent all?ââ she quoted teasingly. ââOh, no, the voices of the dead Sound like the distant torrentâs fall,ââ promptly counter-quoted Anne, pointing solemnly to the box. A burst of laughter broke the tension. âWe must leave him here till morning,â said Phil, replacing the stone. âHe hasnât mewed for five minutes. Perhaps the mews we heard were his dying groan. Or perhaps we merely imagined them, under the strain of our guilty consciences.â But, when the box was lifted in the morning, Rusty bounded at one gay leap to Anneâs shoulder where he began to lick her face affectionately. Never was there a cat more decidedly alive. âHereâs a knot hole in the box,â groaned Phil. âI never saw it. Thatâs why he didnât die. Now, weâve got to do it all over again.â âNo, we havenât,â declared Anne suddenly. âRusty isnât going to be killed again. Heâs my catâand youâve just got to make the best of it.â âOh, well, if youâll settle with Aunt Jimsie and the Sarah-cat,â said Stella, with the air of one washing her hands of the whole affair. From that time Rusty was one of the family. He slept oânights on the scrubbing cushion in the back porch and lived on the fat of the land. By the time Aunt Jamesina came he was plump and glossy and tolerably respectable. But, like Kiplingâs cat, he âwalked by himself.â His paw was against every cat, and every catâs paw against him. One by one he vanquished the aristocratic felines of Spofford Avenue. As for human beings, he loved Anne and Anne alone. Nobody else even dared stroke him. An angry spit and something that sounded much like very improper language greeted any one who did. âThe airs that cat puts on are perfectly intolerable,â declared Stella. âHim was a nice old pussens, him was,â vowed Anne, cuddling her pet defiantly. âWell, I donât know how he and the Sarah-cat will ever make out to live together,â said Stella pesimistically. âCat-fights in the orchard oânights are bad enough. But cat-fights here in the livingroom are unthinkable.â In due time Aunt Jamesina arrived. Anne and Priscilla and Phil had awaited her advent rather dubiously; but when Aunt Jamesina was enthroned in the rocking chair before the open fire they figuratively bowed down and worshipped her. Aunt Jamesina was a tiny old woman with a little, softly-triangular face, and large, soft blue eyes that were alight with unquenchable youth, and as full of hopes as a girlâs. She had pink cheeks and snow-white hair which she wore in quaint little puffs over her ears. âItâs a very old-fashioned way,â she said, knitting industriously at something as dainty and pink as a sunset cloud. âBut _I_ am old-fashioned. My clothes are, and it stands to reason my opinions are, too. I donât say theyâre any the better of that, mind you. In fact, I daresay theyâre a good deal the worse. But theyâve worn nice and easy. New shoes are smarter than old ones, but the old ones are more comfortable. Iâm old enough to indulge myself in the matter of shoes and opinions. I mean to take it real easy here. I know you expect me to look after you and keep you proper, but Iâm not going to do it. Youâre old enough to know how to behave if youâre ever going to be. So, as far as I am concerned,â concluded Aunt Jamesina, with a twinkle in her young eyes, âyou can all go to destruction in your own way.â âOh, will somebody separate those cats?â pleaded Stella, shudderingly. Aunt Jamesina had brought with her not only the Sarah-cat but Joseph. Joseph, she explained, had belonged to a dear friend of hers who had gone to live in Vancouver. âShe couldnât take Joseph with her so she begged me to take him. I really couldnât refuse. Heâs a beautiful catâthat is, his disposition is beautiful. She called him Joseph because his coat is of many colors.â It certainly was. Joseph, as the disgusted Stella said, looked like a walking rag-bag. It was impossible to say what his ground color was. His legs were white with black spots on them. His back was gray with a huge patch of yellow on one side and a black patch on the other. His tail was yellow with a gray tip. One ear was black and one yellow. A black patch over one eye gave him a fearfully rakish look. In reality he was meek and inoffensive, of a sociable disposition. In one respect, if in no other, Joseph was like a lily of the field. He toiled not neither did he spin or catch mice. Yet Solomon in all his glory slept not on softer cushions, or feasted more fully on fat things. Joseph and the Sarah-cat arrived by express in separate boxes. After they had been released and fed, Joseph selected the cushion and corner which appealed to him, and the Sarah-cat gravely sat herself down before the fire and proceeded to wash her face. She was a large, sleek, gray-and-white cat, with an enormous dignity which was not at all impaired by any consciousness of her plebian origin. She had been given to Aunt Jamesina by her washerwoman. âHer name was Sarah, so my husband always called puss the Sarah-cat,â explained Aunt Jamesina. âShe is eight years old, and a remarkable mouser. Donât worry, Stella. The Sarah-cat _never_ fights and Joseph rarely.â âTheyâll have to fight here in self-defense,â said Stella. At this juncture Rusty arrived on the scene. He bounded joyously half way across the room before he saw the intruders. Then he stopped short; his tail expanded until it was as big as three tails. The fur on his back rose up in a defiant arch; Rusty lowered his head, uttered a fearful shriek of hatred and defiance, and launched himself at the Sarah-cat. The stately animal had stopped washing her face and was looking at him curiously. She met his onslaught with one contemptuous sweep of her capable paw. Rusty went rolling helplessly over on the rug; he picked himself up dazedly. What sort of a cat was this who had boxed his ears? He looked dubiously at the Sarah-cat. Would he or would he not? The Sarah-cat deliberately turned her back on him and resumed her toilet operations. Rusty decided that he would not. He never did. From that time on the Sarah-cat ruled the roost. Rusty never again interfered with her. But Joseph rashly sat up and yawned. Rusty, burning to avenge his disgrace, swooped down upon him. Joseph, pacific by nature, could fight upon occasion and fight well. The result was a series of drawn battles. Every day Rusty and Joseph fought at sight. Anne took Rustyâs part and detested Joseph. Stella was in despair. But Aunt Jamesina only laughed. âLet them fight it out,â she said tolerantly. âTheyâll make friends after a bit. Joseph needs some exerciseâhe was getting too fat. And Rusty has to learn he isnât the only cat in the world. â Eventually Joseph and Rusty accepted the situation and from sworn enemies became sworn friends. They slept on the same cushion with their paws about each other, and gravely washed each otherâs faces. âWeâve all got used to each other,â said Phil. âAnd Iâve learned how to wash dishes and sweep a floor.â âBut you neednât try to make us believe you can chloroform a cat,â laughed Anne. âIt was all the fault of the knothole,â protested Phil. âIt was a good thing the knothole was there,â said Aunt Jamesina rather severely. âKittens _have_ to be drowned, I admit, or the world would be overrun. But no decent, grown-up cat should be done to deathâunless he sucks eggs.â âYou wouldnât have thought Rusty very decent if youâd seen him when he came here,â said Stella. âHe positively looked like the Old Nick.â âI donât believe Old Nick can be so very ugly,â said Aunt Jamesina reflectively. âHe wouldnât do so much harm if he was. _I_ always think of him as a rather handsome gentleman.â Chapter 17. A Letter from Davy. âItâs beginning to snow, girls,â said Phil, coming in one November evening, âand there are the loveliest little stars and crosses all over the garden walk. I never noticed before what exquisite things snowflakes really are. One has time to notice things like that in the simple life. Bless you all for permitting me to live it. Itâs really delightful to feel worried because butter has gone up five cents a pound.â âHas it?â demanded Stella, who kept the household accounts. âIt hasâand hereâs your butter. Iâm getting quite expert at marketing. Itâs better fun than flirting,â concluded Phil gravely. âEverything is going up scandalously,â sighed Stella. âNever mind. Thank goodness air and salvation are still free,â said Aunt Jamesina. âAnd so is laughter,â added Anne. âThereâs no tax on it yet and that is well, because youâre all going to laugh presently. Iâm going to read you Davyâs letter. His spelling has improved immensely this past year, though he is not strong on apostrophes, and he certainly possesses the gift of writing an interesting letter. Listen and laugh, before we settle down to the eveningâs study-grind.â âDear Anne,â ran Davyâs letter, âI take my pen to tell you that we are all pretty well and hope this will find you the same. Itâs snowing some today and Marilla says the old woman in the sky is shaking her feather beds. Is the old woman in the sky Godâs wife, Anne? I want to know. âMrs. Lynde has been real sick but she is better now. She fell down the cellar stairs last week. When she fell she grabbed hold of the shelf with all the milk pails and stewpans on it, and it gave way and went down with her and made a splendid crash. Marilla thought it was an earthquake at first. âOne of the stewpans was all dinged up and Mrs. Lynde straned her ribs. The doctor came and gave her medicine to rub on her ribs but she didnât under stand him and took it all inside instead. The doctor said it was a wonder it dident kill her but it dident and it cured her ribs and Mrs. Lynde says doctors dont know much anyhow. But we couldent fix up the stewpan. Marilla had to throw it out. Thanksgiving was last week. There was no school and we had a great dinner. I et mince pie and rost turkey and frut cake and donuts and cheese and jam and choklut cake. Marilla said Iâd die but I dident. Dora had earake after it, only it wasent in her ears it was in her stummick. I dident have earake anywhere. âOur new teacher is a man. He does things for jokes. Last week he made all us third-class boys write a composishun on what kind of a wife weâd like to have and the girls on what kind of a husband. He laughed fit to kill when he read them. This was mine. I thought youd like to see it. ââThe kind of a wife Iâd like to Have. ââShe must have good manners and get my meals on time and do what I tell her and always be very polite to me. She must be fifteen yers old. She must be good to the poor and keep her house tidy and be good tempered and go to church regularly. She must be very handsome and have curly hair. If I get a wife that is just what I like Ill be an awful good husband to her. I think a woman ought to be awful good to her husband. Some poor women havenât any husbands. ââTHE END.ââ âI was at Mrs. Isaac Wrights funeral at White Sands last week. The husband of the corpse felt real sorry. Mrs. Lynde says Mrs. Wrights grandfather stole a sheep but Marilla says we mustent speak ill of the dead. Why mustent we, Anne? I want to know. Itâs pretty safe, ainât it? âMrs. Lynde was awful mad the other day because I asked her if she was alive in Noahâs time. I dident mean to hurt her feelings. I just wanted to know. Was she, Anne? âMr. Harrison wanted to get rid of his dog. So he hunged him once but he come to life and scooted for the barn while Mr. Harrison was digging the grave, so he hunged him again and he stayed dead that time. Mr. Harrison has a new man working for him. Heâs awful okward. Mr. Harrison says he is left handed in both his feet. Mr. Barryâs hired man is lazy. Mrs. Barry says that but Mr. Barry says he aint lazy exactly only he thinks it easier to pray for things than to work for them. âMrs. Harmon Andrews prize pig that she talked so much of died in a fit. Mrs. Lynde says it was a judgment on her for pride. But I think it was hard on the pig. Milty Boulter has been sick. The doctor gave him medicine and it tasted horrid. I offered to take it for him for a quarter but the Boulters are so mean. Milty says heâd rather take it himself and save his money. I asked Mrs. Boulter how a person would go about catching a man and she got awful mad and said she dident know, shed never chased men. âThe A.V.I.S. is going to paint the hall again. Theyâre tired of having it blue. âThe new minister was here to tea last night. He took three pieces of pie. If I did that Mrs. Lynde would call me piggy. And he et fast and took big bites and Marilla is always telling me not to do that. Why can ministers do what boys canât? I want to know. âI havenât any more news. Here are six kisses. xxxxxx. Dora sends one. Heres hers. x. âYour loving friend DAVID KEITHâ âP.S. Anne, who was the devils father? I want to know.â Chapter 18. Miss Josephine Remembers the Anne-girl. When Christmas holidays came the girls of Pattyâs Place scattered to their respective homes, but Aunt Jamesina elected to stay where she was. âI couldnât go to any of the places Iâve been invited and take those three cats,â she said. âAnd Iâm not going to leave the poor creatures here alone for nearly three weeks. If we had any decent neighbors who would feed them I might, but thereâs nothing except millionaires on this street. So Iâll stay here and keep Pattyâs Place warm for you.â Anne went home with the usual joyous anticipationsâwhich were not wholly fulfilled. She found Avonlea in the grip of such an early, cold, and stormy winter as even the âoldest inhabitantâ could not recall. Green Gables was literally hemmed in by huge drifts. Almost every day of that ill-starred vacation it stormed fiercely; and even on fine days it drifted unceasingly. No sooner were the roads broken than they filled in again. It was almost impossible to stir out. The A.V.I.S. tried, on three evenings, to have a party in honor of the college students, and on each evening the storm was so wild that nobody could go, so they gave up the attempt in despair. Anne, despite her love of and loyalty to Green Gables, could not help thinking longingly of Pattyâs Place, its cosy open fire, Aunt Jamesinaâs mirthful eyes, the three cats, the merry chatter of the girls, the pleasantness of Friday evenings when college friends dropped in to talk of grave and gay. Anne was lonely; Diana, during the whole of the holidays, was imprisoned at home with a bad attack of bronchitis. She could not come to Green Gables and it was rarely Anne could get to Orchard Slope, for the old way through the Haunted Wood was impassable with drifts, and the long way over the frozen Lake of Shining Waters was almost as bad. Ruby Gillis was sleeping in the white-heaped graveyard; Jane Andrews was teaching a school on western prairies. Gilbert, to be sure, was still faithful, and waded up to Green Gables every possible evening. But Gilbertâs visits were not what they once were. Anne almost dreaded them. It was very disconcerting to look up in the midst of a sudden silence and find Gilbertâs hazel eyes fixed upon her with a quite unmistakable expression in their grave depths; and it was still more disconcerting to find herself blushing hotly and uncomfortably under his gaze, just as ifâjust as ifâwell, it was very embarrassing. Anne wished herself back at Pattyâs Place, where there was always somebody else about to take the edge off a delicate situation. At Green Gables Marilla went promptly to Mrs. Lyndeâs domain when Gilbert came and insisted on taking the twins with her. The significance of this was unmistakable and Anne was in a helpless fury over it. Davy, however, was perfectly happy. He reveled in getting out in the morning and shoveling out the paths to the well and henhouse. He gloried in the Christmas-tide delicacies which Marilla and Mrs. Lynde vied with each other in preparing for Anne, and he was reading an enthralling tale, in a school library book, of a wonderful hero who seemed blessed with a miraculous faculty for getting into scrapes from which he was usually delivered by an earthquake or a volcanic explosion, which blew him high and dry out of his troubles, landed him in a fortune, and closed the story with proper _ĂŠclat_. âI tell you itâs a bully story, Anne,â he said ecstatically. âIâd ever so much rather read it than the Bible.â âWould you?â smiled Anne. Davy peered curiously at her. âYou donât seem a bit shocked, Anne. Mrs. Lynde was awful shocked when I said it to her.â âNo, Iâm not shocked, Davy. I think itâs quite natural that a nine-year-old boy would sooner read an adventure story than the Bible. But when you are older I hope and think that you will realize what a wonderful book the Bible is.â âOh, I think some parts of it are fine,â conceded Davy. âThat story about Joseph nowâitâs bully. But if Iâd been Joseph _I_ wouldnât have forgive the brothers. No, siree, Anne. Iâd have cut all their heads off. Mrs. Lynde was awful mad when I said that and shut the Bible up and said sheâd never read me any more of it if I talked like that. So I donât talk now when she reads it Sunday afternoons; I just think things and say them to Milty Boulter next day in school. I told Milty the story about Elisha and the bears and it scared him so heâs never made fun of Mr. Harrisonâs bald head once. Are there any bears on P.E. Island, Anne? I want to know.â âNot nowadays,â said Anne, absently, as the wind blew a scud of snow against the window. âOh, dear, will it ever stop storming.â âGod knows,â said Davy airily, preparing to resume his reading. Anne _was_ shocked this time. âDavy!â she exclaimed reproachfully. âMrs. Lynde says that,â protested Davy. âOne night last week Marilla said âWill Ludovic Speed and Theodora Dix _ever_ get married?â and Mrs. Lynde said, ââGod knowsââjust like that.â âWell, it wasnât right for her to say it,â said Anne, promptly deciding upon which horn of this dilemma to empale herself. âIt isnât right for anybody to take that name in vain or speak it lightly, Davy. Donât ever do it again.â âNot if I say it slow and solemn, like the minister?â queried Davy gravely. âNo, not even then.â âWell, I wonât. Ludovic Speed and Theodora Dix live in Middle Grafton and Mrs. Rachel says he has been courting her for a hundred years. Wonât they soon be too old to get married, Anne? I hope Gilbert wonât court _you_ that long. When are you going to be married, Anne? Mrs. Lynde says itâs a sure thing.â âMrs. Lynde is aââ began Anne hotly; then stopped. âAwful old gossip,â completed Davy calmly. âThatâs what every one calls her. But is it a sure thing, Anne? I want to know.â âYouâre a very silly little boy, Davy,â said Anne, stalking haughtily out of the room. The kitchen was deserted and she sat down by the window in the fast falling wintry twilight. The sun had set and the wind had died down. A pale chilly moon looked out behind a bank of purple clouds in the west. The sky faded out, but the strip of yellow along the western horizon grew brighter and fiercer, as if all the stray gleams of light were concentrating in one spot; the distant hills, rimmed with priest-like firs, stood out in dark distinctness against it. Anne looked across the still, white fields, cold and lifeless in the harsh light of that grim sunset, and sighed. She was very lonely; and she was sad at heart; for she was wondering if she would be able to return to Redmond next year. It did not seem likely. The only scholarship possible in the Sophomore year was a very small affair. She would not take Marillaâs money; and there seemed little prospect of being able to earn enough in the summer vacation. âI suppose Iâll just have to drop out next year,â she thought drearily, âand teach a district school again until I earn enough to finish my course. And by that time all my old class will have graduated and Pattyâs Place will be out of the question. But there! Iâm not going to be a coward. Iâm thankful I can earn my way through if necessary.â âHereâs Mr. Harrison wading up the lane,â announced Davy, running out. âI hope heâs brought the mail. Itâs three days since we got it. I want to see what them pesky Grits are doing. Iâm a Conservative, Anne. And I tell you, you have to keep your eye on them Grits.â Mr. Harrison had brought the mail, and merry letters from Stella and Priscilla and Phil soon dissipated Anneâs blues. Aunt Jamesina, too, had written, saying that she was keeping the hearth-fire alight, and that the cats were all well, and the house plants doing fine. âThe weather has been real cold,â she wrote, âso I let the cats sleep in the houseâRusty and Joseph on the sofa in the living-room, and the Sarah-cat on the foot of my bed. Itâs real company to hear her purring when I wake up in the night and think of my poor daughter in the foreign field. If it was anywhere but in India I wouldnât worry, but they say the snakes out there are terrible. It takes all the Sarah-catsâs purring to drive away the thought of those snakes. I have enough faith for everything but the snakes. I canât think why Providence ever made them. Sometimes I donât think He did. Iâm inclined to believe the Old Harry had a hand in making _them_.â Anne had left a thin, typewritten communication till the last, thinking it unimportant. When she had read it she sat very still, with tears in her eyes. âWhat is the matter, Anne?â asked Marilla. âMiss Josephine Barry is dead,â said Anne, in a low tone. âSo she has gone at last,â said Marilla. âWell, she has been sick for over a year, and the Barrys have been expecting to hear of her death any time. It is well she is at rest for she has suffered dreadfully, Anne. She was always kind to you.â âShe has been kind to the last, Marilla. This letter is from her lawyer. She has left me a thousand dollars in her will.â âGracious, ainât that an awful lot of money,â exclaimed Davy. âSheâs the woman you and Diana lit on when you jumped into the spare room bed, ainât she? Diana told me that story. Is that why she left you so much?â âHush, Davy,â said Anne gently. She slipped away to the porch gable with a full heart, leaving Marilla and Mrs. Lynde to talk over the news to their heartsâ content. âDo you sâpose Anne will ever get married now?â speculated Davy anxiously. âWhen Dorcas Sloane got married last summer she said if sheâd had enough money to live on sheâd never have been bothered with a man, but even a widower with eight children was betterân living with a sister-in-law.â âDavy Keith, do hold your tongue,â said Mrs. Rachel severely. âThe way you talk is scandalous for a small boy, thatâs what.â Chapter 19. An Interlude. âTo think that this is my twentieth birthday, and that Iâve left my teens behind me forever,â said Anne, who was curled up on the hearth-rug with Rusty in her lap, to Aunt Jamesina who was reading in her pet chair. They were alone in the living room. Stella and Priscilla had gone to a committee meeting and Phil was upstairs adorning herself for a party. âI suppose you feel kind of, sorryâ said Aunt Jamesina. âThe teens are such a nice part of life. Iâm glad Iâve never gone out of them myself.â Anne laughed. âYou never will, Aunty. Youâll be eighteen when you should be a hundred. Yes, Iâm sorry, and a little dissatisfied as well. Miss Stacy told me long ago that by the time I was twenty my character would be formed, for good or evil. I donât feel that itâs what it should be. Itâs full of flaws.â âSoâs everybodyâs,â said Aunt Jamesina cheerfully. âMineâs cracked in a hundred places. Your Miss Stacy likely meant that when you are twenty your character would have got its permanent bent in one direction or âtother, and would go on developing in that line. Donât worry over it, Anne. Do your duty by God and your neighbor and yourself, and have a good time. Thatâs my philosophy and itâs always worked pretty well. Whereâs Phil off to tonight?â âSheâs going to a dance, and sheâs got the sweetest dress for itâcreamy yellow silk and cobwebby lace. It just suits those brown tints of hers.â âThereâs magic in the words âsilkâ and âlace,â isnât there?â said Aunt Jamesina. âThe very sound of them makes me feel like skipping off to a dance. And _yellow_ silk. It makes one think of a dress of sunshine. I always wanted a yellow silk dress, but first my mother and then my husband wouldnât hear of it. The very first thing Iâm going to do when I get to heaven is to get a yellow silk dress.â Amid Anneâs peal of laughter Phil came downstairs, trailing clouds of glory, and surveyed herself in the long oval mirror on the wall. âA flattering looking glass is a promoter of amiability,â she said. âThe one in my room does certainly make me green. Do I look pretty nice, Anne?â âDo you really know how pretty you are, Phil?â asked Anne, in honest admiration. âOf course I do. What are looking glasses and men for? That wasnât what I meant. Are all my ends tucked in? Is my skirt straight? And would this rose look better lower down? Iâm afraid itâs too highâit will make me look lop-sided. But I hate things tickling my ears.â âEverything is just right, and that southwest dimple of yours is lovely.â âAnne, thereâs one thing in particular I like about youâyouâre so ungrudging. There isnât a particle of envy in you.â âWhy should she be envious?â demanded Aunt Jamesina. âSheâs not quite as goodlooking as you, maybe, but sheâs got a far handsomer nose.â âI know it,â conceded Phil. âMy nose always has been a great comfort to me,â confessed Anne. âAnd I love the way your hair grows on your forehead, Anne. And that one wee curl, always looking as if it were going to drop, but never dropping, is delicious. But as for noses, mine is a dreadful worry to me. I know by the time Iâm forty it will be Byrney. What do you think Iâll look like when Iâm forty, Anne?â âLike an old, matronly, married woman,â teased Anne. âI wonât,â said Phil, sitting down comfortably to wait for her escort. âJoseph, you calico beastie, donât you dare jump on my lap. I wonât go to a dance all over cat hairs. No, Anne, I _wonât_ look matronly. But no doubt Iâll be married.â âTo Alec or Alonzo?â asked Anne. âTo one of them, I suppose,â sighed Phil, âif I can ever decide which.â âIt shouldnât be hard to decide,â scolded Aunt Jamesina. âI was born a see-saw Aunty, and nothing can ever prevent me from teetering.â âYou ought to be more levelheaded, Philippa.â âItâs best to be levelheaded, of course,â agreed Philippa, âbut you miss lots of fun. As for Alec and Alonzo, if you knew them youâd understand why itâs difficult to choose between them. Theyâre equally nice.â âThen take somebody who is nicerâ suggested Aunt Jamesina. âThereâs that Senior who is so devoted to youâWill Leslie. He has such nice, large, mild eyes.â âTheyâre a little bit too large and too mildâlike a cowâs,â said Phil cruelly. âWhat do you say about George Parker?â âThereâs nothing to say about him except that he always looks as if he had just been starched and ironed.â âMarr Holworthy then. You canât find a fault with him.â âNo, he would do if he wasnât poor. I must marry a rich man, Aunt Jamesina. Thatâand good looksâis an indispensable qualification. Iâd marry Gilbert Blythe if he were rich.â âOh, would you?â said Anne, rather viciously. âWe donât like that idea a little bit, although we donât want Gilbert ourselves, oh, no,â mocked Phil. âBut donât letâs talk of disagreeable subjects. Iâll have to marry sometime, I suppose, but I shall put off the evil day as long as I can.â âYou mustnât marry anybody you donât love, Phil, when allâs said and done,â said Aunt Jamesina. ââOh, hearts that loved in the good old way Have been out oâ the fashion this many a day.ââ trilled Phil mockingly. âThereâs the carriage. I flyâBi-bi, you two old-fashioned darlings.â When Phil had gone Aunt Jamesina looked solemnly at Anne. âThat girl is pretty and sweet and goodhearted, but do you think she is quite right in her mind, by spells, Anne?â âOh, I donât think thereâs anything the matter with Philâs mind,â said Anne, hiding a smile. âItâs just her way of talking.â Aunt Jamesina shook her head. âWell, I hope so, Anne. I do hope so, because I love her. But _I_ canât understand herâshe beats me. She isnât like any of the girls I ever knew, or any of the girls I was myself.â âHow many girls were you, Aunt Jimsie?â âAbout half a dozen, my dear.â Chapter 20. Gilbert Speaks. âThis has been a dull, prosy day,â yawned Phil, stretching herself idly on the sofa, having previously dispossessed two exceedingly indignant cats. Anne looked up from _Pickwick Papers_. Now that spring examinations were over she was treating herself to Dickens. âIt has been a prosy day for us,â she said thoughtfully, âbut to some people it has been a wonderful day. Some one has been rapturously happy in it. Perhaps a great deed has been done somewhere todayâor a great poem writtenâor a great man born. And some heart has been broken, Phil.â âWhy did you spoil your pretty thought by tagging that last sentence on, honey?â grumbled Phil. âI donât like to think of broken heartsâor anything unpleasant.â âDo you think youâll be able to shirk unpleasant things all your life, Phil?â âDear me, no. Am I not up against them now? You donât call Alec and Alonzo pleasant things, do you, when they simply plague my life out?â âYou never take anything seriously, Phil.â âWhy should I? There are enough folks who do. The world needs people like me, Anne, just to amuse it. It would be a terrible place if _everybody_ were intellectual and serious and in deep, deadly earnest. MY mission is, as _Josiah Allen_ says, âto charm and allure.â Confess now. Hasnât life at Pattyâs Place been really much brighter and pleasanter this past winter because Iâve been here to leaven you?â âYes, it has,â owned Anne. âAnd you all love meâeven Aunt Jamesina, who thinks Iâm stark mad. So why should I try to be different? Oh, dear, Iâm so sleepy. I was awake until one last night, reading a harrowing ghost story. I read it in bed, and after I had finished it do you suppose I could get out of bed to put the light out? No! And if Stella had not fortunately come in late that lamp would have burned good and bright till morning. When I heard Stella I called her in, explained my predicament, and got her to put out the light. If I had got out myself to do it I knew something would grab me by the feet when I was getting in again. By the way, Anne, has Aunt Jamesina decided what to do this summer?â âYes, sheâs going to stay here. I know sheâs doing it for the sake of those blessed cats, although she says itâs too much trouble to open her own house, and she hates visiting.â âWhat are you reading?â â_Pickwick_.â âThatâs a book that always makes me hungry,â said Phil. âThereâs so much good eating in it. The characters seem always to be reveling on ham and eggs and milk punch. I generally go on a cupboard rummage after reading _Pickwick_. The mere thought reminds me that Iâm starving. Is there any tidbit in the pantry, Queen Anne?â âI made a lemon pie this morning. You may have a piece of it.â Phil dashed out to the pantry and Anne betook herself to the orchard in company with Rusty. It was a moist, pleasantly-odorous night in early spring. The snow was not quite all gone from the park; a little dingy bank of it yet lay under the pines of the harbor road, screened from the influence of April suns. It kept the harbor road muddy, and chilled the evening air. But grass was growing green in sheltered spots and Gilbert had found some pale, sweet arbutus in a hidden corner. He came up from the park, his hands full of it. Anne was sitting on the big gray boulder in the orchard looking at the poem of a bare, birchen bough hanging against the pale red sunset with the very perfection of grace. She was building a castle in airâa wondrous mansion whose sunlit courts and stately halls were steeped in Arabyâs perfume, and where she reigned queen and chatelaine. She frowned as she saw Gilbert coming through the orchard. Of late she had managed not to be left alone with Gilbert. But he had caught her fairly now; and even Rusty had deserted her. Gilbert sat down beside her on the boulder and held out his Mayflowers. âDonât these remind you of home and our old schoolday picnics, Anne?â Anne took them and buried her face in them. âIâm in Mr. Silas Sloaneâs barrens this very minute,â she said rapturously. âI suppose you will be there in reality in a few days?â âNo, not for a fortnight. Iâm going to visit with Phil in Bolingbroke before I go home. Youâll be in Avonlea before I will.â âNo, I shall not be in Avonlea at all this summer, Anne. Iâve been offered a job in the Daily News office and Iâm going to take it.â âOh,â said Anne vaguely. She wondered what a whole Avonlea summer would be like without Gilbert. Somehow she did not like the prospect. âWell,â she concluded flatly, âit is a good thing for you, of course.â âYes, Iâve been hoping I would get it. It will help me out next year.â âYou mustnât work _too_ hard,â said Anne, without any very clear idea of what she was saying. She wished desperately that Phil would come out. âYouâve studied very constantly this winter. Isnât this a delightful evening? Do you know, I found a cluster of white violets under that old twisted tree over there today? I felt as if I had discovered a gold mine.â âYou are always discovering gold mines,â said Gilbertâalso absently. âLet us go and see if we can find some more,â suggested Anne eagerly. âIâll call Phil andââ âNever mind Phil and the violets just now, Anne,â said Gilbert quietly, taking her hand in a clasp from which she could not free it. âThere is something I want to say to you.â âOh, donât say it,â cried Anne, pleadingly. âDonâtâ_please_, Gilbert.â âI must. Things canât go on like this any longer. Anne, I love you. You know I do. IâI canât tell you how much. Will you promise me that some day youâll be my wife?â âIâI canât,â said Anne miserably. âOh, Gilbertâyouâyouâve spoiled everything.â âDonât you care for me at all?â Gilbert asked after a very dreadful pause, during which Anne had not dared to look up. âNotânot in that way. I do care a great deal for you as a friend. But I donât love you, Gilbert.â âBut canât you give me some hope that you willâyet?â âNo, I canât,â exclaimed Anne desperately. âI never, never can love youâin that wayâGilbert. You must never speak of this to me again.â There was another pauseâso long and so dreadful that Anne was driven at last to look up. Gilbertâs face was white to the lips. And his eyesâbut Anne shuddered and looked away. There was nothing romantic about this. Must proposals be either grotesque orâhorrible? Could she ever forget Gilbertâs face? âIs there anybody else?â he asked at last in a low voice. âNoâno,â said Anne eagerly. âI donât care for any one like _that_âand I _like_ you better than anybody else in the world, Gilbert. And we mustâwe must go on being friends, Gilbert.â Gilbert gave a bitter little laugh. âFriends! Your friendship canât satisfy me, Anne. I want your loveâand you tell me I can never have that.â âIâm sorry. Forgive me, Gilbert,â was all Anne could say. Where, oh, where were all the gracious and graceful speeches wherewith, in imagination, she had been wont to dismiss rejected suitors? Gilbert released her hand gently. âThere isnât anything to forgive. There have been times when I thought you did care. Iâve deceived myself, thatâs all. Goodbye, Anne.â Anne got herself to her room, sat down on her window seat behind the pines, and cried bitterly. She felt as if something incalculably precious had gone out of her life. It was Gilbertâs friendship, of course. Oh, why must she lose it after this fashion? âWhat is the matter, honey?â asked Phil, coming in through the moonlit gloom. Anne did not answer. At that moment she wished Phil were a thousand miles away. âI suppose youâve gone and refused Gilbert Blythe. You are an idiot, Anne Shirley!â âDo you call it idiotic to refuse to marry a man I donât love?â said Anne coldly, goaded to reply. âYou donât know love when you see it. Youâve tricked something out with your imagination that you think love, and you expect the real thing to look like that. There, thatâs the first sensible thing Iâve ever said in my life. I wonder how I managed it?â âPhil,â pleaded Anne, âplease go away and leave me alone for a little while. My world has tumbled into pieces. I want to reconstruct it.â âWithout any Gilbert in it?â said Phil, going. A world without any Gilbert in it! Anne repeated the words drearily. Would it not be a very lonely, forlorn place? Well, it was all Gilbertâs fault. He had spoiled their beautiful comradeship. She must just learn to live without it. Chapter 21. Roses of Yesterday. The fortnight Anne spent in Bolingbroke was a very pleasant one, with a little under current of vague pain and dissatisfaction running through it whenever she thought about Gilbert. There was not, however, much time to think about him. âMount Holly,â the beautiful old Gordon homestead, was a very gay place, overrun by Philâs friends of both sexes. There was quite a bewildering succession of drives, dances, picnics and boating parties, all expressively lumped together by Phil under the head of âjamboreesâ; Alec and Alonzo were so constantly on hand that Anne wondered if they ever did anything but dance attendance on that will-oâ-the-wisp of a Phil. They were both nice, manly fellows, but Anne would not be drawn into any opinion as to which was the nicer. âAnd I depended so on you to help me make up my mind which of them I should promise to marry,â mourned Phil. âYou must do that for yourself. You are quite expert at making up your mind as to whom other people should marry,â retorted Anne, rather caustically. âOh, thatâs a very different thing,â said Phil, truly. But the sweetest incident of Anneâs sojourn in Bolingbroke was the visit to her birthplaceâthe little shabby yellow house in an out-of-the-way street she had so often dreamed about. She looked at it with delighted eyes, as she and Phil turned in at the gate. âItâs almost exactly as Iâve pictured it,â she said. âThere is no honeysuckle over the windows, but there is a lilac tree by the gate, andâyes, there are the muslin curtains in the windows. How glad I am it is still painted yellow.â A very tall, very thin woman opened the door. âYes, the Shirleys lived here twenty years ago,â she said, in answer to Anneâs question. âThey had it rented. I remember ’em. They both died of fever at onct. It was turrible sad. They left a baby. I guess itâs dead long ago. It was a sickly thing. Old Thomas and his wife took itâas if they hadnât enough of their own.â âIt didnât die,â said Anne, smiling. âI was that baby.â âYou donât say so! Why, you have grown,â exclaimed the woman, as if she were much surprised that Anne was not still a baby. âCome to look at you, I see the resemblance. Youâre complected like your pa. He had red hair. But you favor your ma in your eyes and mouth. She was a nice little thing. My darter went to school to her and was nigh crazy about her. They was buried in the one grave and the School Board put up a tombstone to them as a reward for faithful service. Will you come in?â âWill you let me go all over the house?â asked Anne eagerly. âLaws, yes, you can if you like. âTwonât take you longâthere ainât much of it. I keep at my man to build a new kitchen, but he ainât one of your hustlers. The parlorâs in there and thereâs two rooms upstairs. Just prowl about yourselves. Iâve got to see to the baby. The east room was the one you were born in. I remember your ma saying she loved to see the sunrise; and I mind hearing that you was born just as the sun was rising and its light on your face was the first thing your ma saw.â Anne went up the narrow stairs and into that little east room with a full heart. It was as a shrine to her. Here her mother had dreamed the exquisite, happy dreams of anticipated motherhood; here that red sunrise light had fallen over them both in the sacred hour of birth; here her mother had died. Anne looked about her reverently, her eyes with tears. It was for her one of the jeweled hours of life that gleam out radiantly forever in memory. âJust to think of itâmother was younger than I am now when I was born,â she whispered. When Anne went downstairs the lady of the house met her in the hall. She held out a dusty little packet tied with faded blue ribbon. âHereâs a bundle of old letters I found in that closet upstairs when I came here,â she said. âI dunno what they areâI never bothered to look in ’em, but the address on the top one is âMiss Bertha Willis,â and that was your maâs maiden name. You can take ’em if youâd keer to have ’em.â âOh, thank youâthank you,â cried Anne, clasping the packet rapturously. âThat was all that was in the house,â said her hostess. âThe furniture was all sold to pay the doctor bills, and Mrs. Thomas got your maâs clothes and little things. I reckon they didnât last long among that drove of Thomas youngsters. They was destructive young animals, as I mind ’em.â âI havenât one thing that belonged to my mother,â said Anne, chokily. âIâI can never thank you enough for these letters.â âYouâre quite welcome. Laws, but your eyes is like your maâs. She could just about talk with hers. Your father was sorter homely but awful nice. I mind hearing folks say when they was married that there never was two people more in love with each otherâPore creatures, they didnât live much longer; but they was awful happy while they was alive, and I sâpose that counts for a good deal.â Anne longed to get home to read her precious letters; but she made one little pilgrimage first. She went alone to the green corner of the âoldâ Bolingbroke cemetery where her father and mother were buried, and left on their grave the white flowers she carried. Then she hastened back to Mount Holly, shut herself up in her room, and read the letters. Some were written by her father, some by her mother. There were not manyâonly a dozen in allâfor Walter and Bertha Shirley had not been often separated during their courtship. The letters were yellow and faded and dim, blurred with the touch of passing years. No profound words of wisdom were traced on the stained and wrinkled pages, but only lines of love and trust. The sweetness of forgotten things clung to themâthe far-off, fond imaginings of those long-dead lovers. Bertha Shirley had possessed the gift of writing letters which embodied the charming personality of the writer in words and thoughts that retained their beauty and fragrance after the lapse of time. The letters were tender, intimate, sacred. To Anne, the sweetest of all was the one written after her birth to the father on a brief absence. It was full of a proud young motherâs accounts of âbabyââher cleverness, her brightness, her thousand sweetnesses. âI love her best when she is asleep and better still when she is awake,â Bertha Shirley had written in the postscript. Probably it was the last sentence she had ever penned. The end was very near for her. âThis has been the most beautiful day of my life,â Anne said to Phil that night. âIâve FOUND my father and mother. Those letters have made them REAL to me. Iâm not an orphan any longer. I feel as if I had opened a book and found roses of yesterday, sweet and beloved, between its leaves.â Chapter 22. Spring and Anne Return to Green Gables. The firelight shadows were dancing over the kitchen walls at Green Gables, for the spring evening was chilly; through the open east window drifted in the subtly sweet voices of the night. Marilla was sitting by the fireâat least, in body. In spirit she was roaming olden ways, with feet grown young. Of late Marilla had thus spent many an hour, when she thought she should have been knitting for the twins. âI suppose Iâm growing old,â she said. Yet Marilla had changed but little in the past nine years, save to grow something thinner, and even more angular; there was a little more gray in the hair that was still twisted up in the same hard knot, with two hairpinsâ_were_ they the same hairpins?âstill stuck through it. But her expression was very different; the something about the mouth which had hinted at a sense of humor had developed wonderfully; her eyes were gentler and milder, her smile more frequent and tender. Marilla was thinking of her whole past life, her cramped but not unhappy childhood, the jealously hidden dreams and the blighted hopes of her girlhood, the long, gray, narrow, monotonous years of dull middle life that followed. And the coming of Anneâthe vivid, imaginative, impetuous child with her heart of love, and her world of fancy, bringing with her color and warmth and radiance, until the wilderness of existence had blossomed like the rose. Marilla felt that out of her sixty years she had lived only the nine that had followed the advent of Anne. And Anne would be home tomorrow night. The kitchen door opened. Marilla looked up expecting to see Mrs. Lynde. Anne stood before her, tall and starry-eyed, with her hands full of Mayflowers and violets. âAnne Shirley!â exclaimed Marilla. For once in her life she was surprised out of her reserve; she caught her girl in her arms and crushed her and her flowers against her heart, kissing the bright hair and sweet face warmly. âI never looked for you till tomorrow night. How did you get from Carmody?â âWalked, dearest of Marillas. Havenât I done it a score of times in the Queenâs days? The mailman is to bring my trunk tomorrow; I just got homesick all at once, and came a day earlier. And oh! Iâve had such a lovely walk in the May twilight; I stopped by the barrens and picked these Mayflowers; I came through Violet-Vale; itâs just a big bowlful of violets nowâthe dear, sky-tinted things. Smell them, Marillaâdrink them in.â Marilla sniffed obligingly, but she was more interested in Anne than in drinking violets. âSit down, child. You must be real tired. Iâm going to get you some supper.â âThereâs a darling moonrise behind the hills tonight, Marilla, and oh, how the frogs sang me home from Carmody! I do love the music of the frogs. It seems bound up with all my happiest recollections of old spring evenings. And it always reminds me of the night I came here first. Do you remember it, Marilla?â âWell, yes,â said Marilla with emphasis. âIâm not likely to forget it ever.â âThey used to sing so madly in the marsh and brook that year. I would listen to them at my window in the dusk, and wonder how they could seem so glad and so sad at the same time. Oh, but itâs good to be home again! Redmond was splendid and Bolingbroke delightfulâbut Green Gables is _home_.â âGilbert isnât coming home this summer, I hear,â said Marilla. âNo.â Something in Anneâs tone made Marilla glance at her sharply, but Anne was apparently absorbed in arranging her violets in a bowl. âSee, arenât they sweet?â she went on hurriedly. âThe year is a book, isnât it, Marilla? Springâs pages are written in Mayflowers and violets, summerâs in roses, autumnâs in red maple leaves, and winter in holly and evergreen. âDid Gilbert do well in his examinations?â persisted Marilla. âExcellently well. He led his class. But where are the twins and Mrs. Lynde?â âRachel and Dora are over at Mr. Harrisonâs. Davy is down at Boultersâ. I think I hear him coming now.â Davy burst in, saw Anne, stopped, and then hurled himself upon her with a joyful yell. âOh, Anne, ainât I glad to see you! Say, Anne, Iâve grown two inches since last fall. Mrs. Lynde measured me with her tape today, and say, Anne, see my front tooth. Itâs gone. Mrs. Lynde tied one end of a string to it and the other end to the door, and then shut the door. I sold it to Milty for two cents. Miltyâs collecting teeth.â âWhat in the world does he want teeth for?â asked Marilla. âTo make a necklace for playing Indian Chief,â explained Davy, climbing upon Anneâs lap. âHeâs got fifteen already, and everybodyâs elseâs promised, so thereâs no use in the rest of us starting to collect, too. I tell you the Boulters are great business people.â âWere you a good boy at Mrs. Boulterâs?â asked Marilla severely. âYes; but say, Marilla, Iâm tired of being good.â âYouâd get tired of being bad much sooner, Davy-boy,â said Anne. âWell, itâd be fun while it lasted, wouldnât it?â persisted Davy. âI could be sorry for it afterwards, couldnât I?â âBeing sorry wouldnât do away with the consequences of being bad, Davy. Donât you remember the Sunday last summer when you ran away from Sunday School? You told me then that being bad wasnât worth while. What were you and Milty doing today?â âOh, we fished and chased the cat, and hunted for eggs, and yelled at the echo. Thereâs a great echo in the bush behind the Boulter barn. Say, what is echo, Anne; I want to know.â âEcho is a beautiful nymph, Davy, living far away in the woods, and laughing at the world from among the hills.â âWhat does she look like?â âHer hair and eyes are dark, but her neck and arms are white as snow. No mortal can ever see how fair she is. She is fleeter than a deer, and that mocking voice of hers is all we can know of her. You can hear her calling at night; you can hear her laughing under the stars. But you can never see her. She flies afar if you follow her, and laughs at you always just over the next hill.â âIs that true, Anne? Or is it a whopper?â demanded Davy staring. âDavy,â said Anne despairingly, âhavenât you sense enough to distinguish between a fairytale and a falsehood?â âThen what is it that sasses back from the Boulter bush? I want to know,â insisted Davy. âWhen you are a little older, Davy, Iâll explain it all to you. â The mention of age evidently gave a new turn to Davyâs thoughts for after a few moments of reflection, he whispered solemnly: âAnne, Iâm going to be married.â âWhen?â asked Anne with equal solemnity. âOh, not until Iâm grown-up, of course.â âWell, thatâs a relief, Davy. Who is the lady?â âStella Fletcher; sheâs in my class at school. And say, Anne, sheâs the prettiest girl you ever saw. If I die before I grow up youâll keep an eye on her, wonât you?â âDavy Keith, do stop talking such nonsense,â said Marilla severely. ââTisnât nonsense,â protested Davy in an injured tone. âSheâs my promised wife, and if I was to die sheâd be my promised widow, wouldnât she? And she hasnât got a soul to look after her except her old grandmother.â âCome and have your supper, Anne,â said Marilla, âand donât encourage that child in his absurd talk.â Chapter 23. Paul Cannot Find the Rock People. Life was very pleasant in Avonlea that summer, although Anne, amid all her vacation joys, was haunted by a sense of âsomething gone which should be there.â She would not admit, even in her inmost reflections, that this was caused by Gilbertâs absence. But when she had to walk home alone from prayer meetings and A.V.I.S. pow-wows, while Diana and Fred, and many other gay couples, loitered along the dusky, starlit country roads, there was a queer, lonely ache in her heart which she could not explain away. Gilbert did not even write to her, as she thought he might have done. She knew he wrote to Diana occasionally, but she would not inquire about him; and Diana, supposing that Anne heard from him, volunteered no information. Gilbertâs mother, who was a gay, frank, light-hearted lady, but not overburdened with tact, had a very embarrassing habit of asking Anne, always in a painfully distinct voice and always in the presence of a crowd, if she had heard from Gilbert lately. Poor Anne could only blush horribly and murmur, ânot very lately,â which was taken by all, Mrs. Blythe included, to be merely a maidenly evasion. Apart from this, Anne enjoyed her summer. Priscilla came for a merry visit in June; and, when she had gone, Mr. and Mrs. Irving, Paul and Charlotta the Fourth came âhomeâ for July and August. Echo Lodge was the scene of gaieties once more, and the echoes over the river were kept busy mimicking the laughter that rang in the old garden behind the spruces. âMiss Lavendarâ had not changed, except to grow even sweeter and prettier. Paul adored her, and the companionship between them was beautiful to see. âBut I donât call her âmotherâ just by itself,â he explained to Anne. âYou see, _that_ name belongs just to my own little mother, and I canât give it to any one else. You know, teacher. But I call her âMother Lavendarâ and I love her next best to father. IâI even love her a _little_ better than you, teacher.â âWhich is just as it ought to be,â answered Anne. Paul was thirteen now and very tall for his years. His face and eyes were as beautiful as ever, and his fancy was still like a prism, separating everything that fell upon it into rainbows. He and Anne had delightful rambles to wood and field and shore. Never were there two more thoroughly âkindred spirits.â Charlotta the Fourth had blossomed out into young ladyhood. She wore her hair now in an enormous pompador and had discarded the blue ribbon bows of auld lang syne, but her face was as freckled, her nose as snubbed, and her mouth and smiles as wide as ever. âYou donât think I talk with a Yankee accent, do you, Miss Shirley, maâam?â she demanded anxiously. âI donât notice it, Charlotta.â âIâm real glad of that. They said I did at home, but I thought likely they just wanted to aggravate me. I donât want no Yankee accent. Not that Iâve a word to say against the Yankees, Miss Shirley, maâam. Theyâre real civilized. But give me old P.E. Island every time.â Paul spent his first fortnight with his grandmother Irving in Avonlea. Anne was there to meet him when he came, and found him wild with eagerness to get to the shoreâNora and the Golden Lady and the Twin Sailors would be there. He could hardly wait to eat his supper. Could he not see Noraâs elfin face peering around the point, watching for him wistfully? But it was a very sober Paul who came back from the shore in the twilight. âDidnât you find your Rock People?â asked Anne. Paul shook his chestnut curls sorrowfully. âThe Twin Sailors and the Golden Lady never came at all,â he said. âNora was thereâbut Nora is not the same, teacher. She is changed.â âOh, Paul, it is you who are changed,â said Anne. âYou have grown too old for the Rock People. They like only children for playfellows. I am afraid the Twin Sailors will never again come to you in the pearly, enchanted boat with the sail of moonshine; and the Golden Lady will play no more for you on her golden harp. Even Nora will not meet you much longer. You must pay the penalty of growing-up, Paul. You must leave fairyland behind you.â âYou two talk as much foolishness as ever you did,â said old Mrs. Irving, half-indulgently, half-reprovingly. âOh, no, we donât,â said Anne, shaking her head gravely. âWe are getting very, very wise, and it is such a pity. We are never half so interesting when we have learned that language is given us to enable us to conceal our thoughts.â âBut it isnâtâit is given us to exchange our thoughts,â said Mrs. Irving seriously. She had never heard of Tallyrand and did not understand epigrams. Anne spent a fortnight of halcyon days at Echo Lodge in the golden prime of August. While there she incidentally contrived to hurry Ludovic Speed in his leisurely courting of Theodora Dix, as related duly in another chronicle of her history.(1) Arnold Sherman, an elderly friend of the Irvings, was there at the same time, and added not a little to the general pleasantness of life. (1 Chronicles of Avonlea.) âWhat a nice play-time this has been,â said Anne. âI feel like a giant refreshed. And itâs only a fortnight more till I go back to Kingsport, and Redmond and Pattyâs Place. Pattyâs Place is the dearest spot, Miss Lavendar. I feel as if I had two homesâone at Green Gables and one at Pattyâs Place. But where has the summer gone? It doesnât seem a day since I came home that spring evening with the Mayflowers. When I was little I couldnât see from one end of the summer to the other. It stretched before me like an unending season. Now, â’tis a handbreadth, ’tis a tale.ââ âAnne, are you and Gilbert Blythe as good friends as you used to be?â asked Miss Lavendar quietly. âI am just as much Gilbertâs friend as ever I was, Miss Lavendar.â Miss Lavendar shook her head. âI see somethingâs gone wrong, Anne. Iâm going to be impertinent and ask what. Have you quarrelled?â âNo; itâs only that Gilbert wants more than friendship and I canât give him more.â âAre you sure of that, Anne?â âPerfectly sure.â âIâm very, very sorry.â âI wonder why everybody seems to think I ought to marry Gilbert Blythe,â said Anne petulantly. âBecause you were made and meant for each other, Anneâthat is why. You neednât toss that young head of yours. Itâs a fact.â Chapter 24. Enter Jonas. âPROSPECT POINT, âAugust 20th. âDear AnneâspelledâwithâanâE,â wrote Phil, âI must prop my eyelids open long enough to write you. Iâve neglected you shamefully this summer, honey, but all my other correspondents have been neglected, too. I have a huge pile of letters to answer, so I must gird up the loins of my mind and hoe in. Excuse my mixed metaphors. Iâm fearfully sleepy. Last night Cousin Emily and I were calling at a neighborâs. There were several other callers there, and as soon as those unfortunate creatures left, our hostess and her three daughters picked them all to pieces. I knew they would begin on Cousin Emily and me as soon as the door shut behind us. When we came home Mrs. Lilly informed us that the aforesaid neighborâs hired boy was supposed to be down with scarlet fever. You can always trust Mrs. Lilly to tell you cheerful things like that. I have a horror of scarlet fever. I couldnât sleep when I went to bed for thinking of it. I tossed and tumbled about, dreaming fearful dreams when I did snooze for a minute; and at three I wakened up with a high fever, a sore throat, and a raging headache. I knew I had scarlet fever; I got up in a panic and hunted up Cousin Emilyâs âdoctor bookâ to read up the symptoms. Anne, I had them all. So I went back to bed, and knowing the worst, slept like a top the rest of the night. Though why a top should sleep sounder than anything else I never could understand. But this morning I was quite well, so it couldnât have been the fever. I suppose if I did catch it last night it couldnât have developed so soon. I can remember that in daytime, but at three oâclock at night I never can be logical. âI suppose you wonder what Iâm doing at Prospect Point. Well, I always like to spend a month of summer at the shore, and father insists that I come to his second-cousin Emilyâs âselect boardinghouseâ at Prospect Point. So a fortnight ago I came as usual. And as usual old âUncle Mark Millerâ brought me from the station with his ancient buggy and what he calls his âgenerous purposeâ horse. He is a nice old man and gave me a handful of pink peppermints. Peppermints always seem to me such a religious sort of candyâI suppose because when I was a little girl Grandmother Gordon always gave them to me in church. Once I asked, referring to the smell of peppermints, âIs that the odor of sanctity?â I didnât like to eat Uncle Markâs peppermints because he just fished them loose out of his pocket, and had to pick some rusty nails and other things from among them before he gave them to me. But I wouldnât hurt his dear old feelings for anything, so I carefully sowed them along the road at intervals. When the last one was gone, Uncle Mark said, a little rebukingly, âYe shouldnât aâet all them candies to onct, Miss Phil. Youâll likely have the stummick-ache.â âCousin Emily has only five boarders besides myselfâfour old ladies and one young man. My right-hand neighbor is Mrs. Lilly. She is one of those people who seem to take a gruesome pleasure in detailing all their many aches and pains and sicknesses. You cannot mention any ailment but she says, shaking her head, âAh, I know too well what that isââand then you get all the details. Jonas declares he once spoke of locomotor ataxia in hearing and she said she knew too well what that was. She suffered from it for ten years and was finally cured by a traveling doctor. âWho is Jonas? Just wait, Anne Shirley. Youâll hear all about Jonas in the proper time and place. He is not to be mixed up with estimable old ladies. âMy left-hand neighbor at the table is Mrs. Phinney. She always speaks with a wailing, dolorous voiceâyou are nervously expecting her to burst into tears every moment. She gives you the impression that life to her is indeed a vale of tears, and that a smile, never to speak of a laugh, is a frivolity truly reprehensible. She has a worse opinion of me than Aunt Jamesina, and she doesnât love me hard to atone for it, as Aunty J. does, either. âMiss Maria Grimsby sits cati-corner from me. The first day I came I remarked to Miss Maria that it looked a little like rainâand Miss Maria laughed. I said the road from the station was very prettyâand Miss Maria laughed. I said there seemed to be a few mosquitoes left yetâand Miss Maria laughed. I said that Prospect Point was as beautiful as everâand Miss Maria laughed. If I were to say to Miss Maria, âMy father has hanged himself, my mother has taken poison, my brother is in the penitentiary, and I am in the last stages of consumption,â Miss Maria would laugh. She canât help itâshe was born so; but is very sad and awful. âThe fifth old lady is Mrs. Grant. She is a sweet old thing; but she never says anything but good of anybody and so she is a very uninteresting conversationalist. âAnd now for Jonas, Anne. âThat first day I came I saw a young man sitting opposite me at the table, smiling at me as if he had known me from my cradle. I knew, for Uncle Mark had told me, that his name was Jonas Blake, that he was a Theological Student from St. Columbia, and that he had taken charge of the Point Prospect Mission Church for the summer. âHe is a very ugly young manâreally, the ugliest young man Iâve ever seen. He has a big, loose-jointed figure with absurdly long legs. His hair is tow-color and lank, his eyes are green, and his mouth is big, and his earsâbut I never think about his ears if I can help it. âHe has a lovely voiceâif you shut your eyes he is adorableâand he certainly has a beautiful soul and disposition. âWe were good chums right way. Of course he is a graduate of Redmond, and that is a link between us. We fished and boated together; and we walked on the sands by moonlight. He didnât look so homely by moonlight and oh, he was nice. Niceness fairly exhaled from him. The old ladiesâexcept Mrs. Grantâdonât approve of Jonas, because he laughs and jokesâand because he evidently likes the society of frivolous me better than theirs. âSomehow, Anne, I donât want him to think me frivolous. This is ridiculous. Why should I care what a tow-haired person called Jonas, whom I never saw before thinks of me? âLast Sunday Jonas preached in the village church. I went, of course, but I couldnât realize that Jonas was going to preach. The fact that he was a ministerâor going to be oneâpersisted in seeming a huge joke to me. âWell, Jonas preached. And, by the time he had preached ten minutes, I felt so small and insignificant that I thought I must be invisible to the naked eye. Jonas never said a word about women and he never looked at me. But I realized then and there what a pitiful, frivolous, small-souled little butterfly I was, and how horribly different I must be from Jonasâ ideal woman. _She_ would be grand and strong and noble. He was so earnest and tender and true. He was everything a minister ought to be. I wondered how I could ever have thought him uglyâbut he really is!âwith those inspired eyes and that intellectual brow which the roughly-falling hair hid on week days. âIt was a splendid sermon and I could have listened to it forever, and it made me feel utterly wretched. Oh, I wish I was like _you_, Anne. âHe caught up with me on the road home, and grinned as cheerfully as usual. But his grin could never deceive me again. I had seen the _real_ Jonas. I wondered if he could ever see the _real Phil_âwhom _nobody_, not even you, Anne, has ever seen yet. ââJonas,â I saidâI forgot to call him Mr. Blake. Wasnât it dreadful? But there are times when things like that donât matterââJonas, you were born to be a minister. You _couldnât_ be anything else.â ââNo, I couldnât,â he said soberly. âI tried to be something else for a long timeâI didnât want to be a minister. But I came to see at last that it was the work given me to doâand God helping me, I shall try to do it.â âHis voice was low and reverent. I thought that he would do his work and do it well and nobly; and happy the woman fitted by nature and training to help him do it. _She_ would be no feather, blown about by every fickle wind of fancy. _She_ would always know what hat to put on. Probably she would have only one. Ministers never have much money. But she wouldnât mind having one hat or none at all, because she would have Jonas. âAnne Shirley, donât you dare to say or hint or think that Iâve fallen in love with Mr. Blake. Could _I_ care for a lank, poor, ugly theologueânamed Jonas? As Uncle Mark says, âItâs impossible, and whatâs more itâs improbable.â âGood night, PHIL.â âP.S. It is impossibleâbut I am horribly afraid itâs true. Iâm happy and wretched and scared. _He_ can _never_ care for me, I know. Do you think I could ever develop into a passable ministerâs wife, Anne? And _would_ they expect me to lead in prayer? P G.â Chapter 25. Enter Prince Charming. âIâm contrasting the claims of indoors and out,â said Anne, looking from the window of Pattyâs Place to the distant pines of the park. âIâve an afternoon to spend in sweet doing nothing, Aunt Jimsie. Shall I spend it here where there is a cosy fire, a plateful of delicious russets, three purring and harmonious cats, and two impeccable china dogs with green noses? Or shall I go to the park, where there is the lure of gray woods and of gray water lapping on the harbor rocks?â âIf I was as young as you, Iâd decide in favor of the park,â said Aunt Jamesina, tickling Josephâs yellow ear with a knitting needle. âI thought that you claimed to be as young as any of us, Aunty,â teased Anne. âYes, in my soul. But Iâll admit my legs arenât as young as yours. You go and get some fresh air, Anne. You look pale lately.â âI think Iâll go to the park,â said Anne restlessly. âI donât feel like tame domestic joys today. I want to feel alone and free and wild. The park will be empty, for every one will be at the football match.â âWhy didnât you go to it?â ââNobody axed me, sir, she saidââat least, nobody but that horrid little Dan Ranger. I wouldnât go anywhere with him; but rather than hurt his poor little tender feelings I said I wasnât going to the game at all. I donât mind. Iâm not in the mood for football today somehow.â âYou go and get some fresh air,â repeated Aunt Jamesina, âbut take your umbrella, for I believe itâs going to rain. Iâve rheumatism in my leg.â âOnly old people should have rheumatism, Aunty.â âAnybody is liable to rheumatism in her legs, Anne. Itâs only old people who should have rheumatism in their souls, though. Thank goodness, I never have. When you get rheumatism in your soul you might as well go and pick out your coffin.â It was Novemberâthe month of crimson sunsets, parting birds, deep, sad hymns of the sea, passionate wind-songs in the pines. Anne roamed through the pineland alleys in the park and, as she said, let that great sweeping wind blow the fogs out of her soul. Anne was not wont to be troubled with soul fog. But, somehow, since her return to Redmond for this third year, life had not mirrored her spirit back to her with its old, perfect, sparkling clearness. Outwardly, existence at Pattyâs Place was the same pleasant round of work and study and recreation that it had always been. On Friday evenings the big, fire-lighted livingroom was crowded by callers and echoed to endless jest and laughter, while Aunt Jamesina smiled beamingly on them all. The âJonasâ of Philâs letter came often, running up from St. Columbia on the early train and departing on the late. He was a general favorite at Pattyâs Place, though Aunt Jamesina shook her head and opined that divinity students were not what they used to be. âHeâs _very_ nice, my dear,â she told Phil, âbut ministers ought to be graver and more dignified.â âCanât a man laugh and laugh and be a Christian still?â demanded Phil. âOh, _men_âyes. But I was speaking of _ministers_, my dear,â said Aunt Jamesina rebukingly. âAnd you shouldnât flirt so with Mr. Blakeâyou really shouldnât.â âIâm not flirting with him,â protested Phil. Nobody believed her, except Anne. The others thought she was amusing herself as usual, and told her roundly that she was behaving very badly. âMr. Blake isnât of the Alec-and-Alonzo type, Phil,â said Stella severely. âHe takes things seriously. You may break his heart.â âDo you really think I could?â asked Phil. âIâd love to think so.â âPhilippa Gordon! I never thought you were utterly unfeeling. The idea of you saying youâd love to break a manâs heart!â âI didnât say so, honey. Quote me correctly. I said Iâd like to think I _could_ break it. I would like to know I had the _power_ to do it.â âI donât understand you, Phil. You are leading that man on deliberatelyâand you know you donât mean anything by it.â âI mean to make him ask me to marry him if I can,â said Phil calmly. âI give you up,â said Stella hopelessly. Gilbert came occasionally on Friday evenings. He seemed always in good spirits, and held his own in the jests and repartee that flew about. He neither sought nor avoided Anne. When circumstances brought them in contact he talked to her pleasantly and courteously, as to any newly-made acquaintance. The old camaraderie was gone entirely. Anne felt it keenly; but she told herself she was very glad and thankful that Gilbert had got so completely over his disappointment in regard to her. She had really been afraid, that April evening in the orchard, that she had hurt him terribly and that the wound would be long in healing. Now she saw that she need not have worried. Men have died and the worms have eaten them but not for love. Gilbert evidently was in no danger of immediate dissolution. He was enjoying life, and he was full of ambition and zest. For him there was to be no wasting in despair because a woman was fair and cold. Anne, as she listened to the ceaseless badinage that went on between him and Phil, wondered if she had only imagined that look in his eyes when she had told him she could never care for him. There were not lacking those who would gladly have stepped into Gilbertâs vacant place. But Anne snubbed them without fear and without reproach. If the real Prince Charming was never to come she would have none of a substitute. So she sternly told herself that gray day in the windy park. Suddenly the rain of Aunt Jamesinaâs prophecy came with a swish and rush. Anne put up her umbrella and hurried down the slope. As she turned out on the harbor road a savage gust of wind tore along it. Instantly her umbrella turned wrong side out. Anne clutched at it in despair. And thenâthere came a voice close to her. âPardon meâmay I offer you the shelter of my umbrella?â Anne looked up. Tall and handsome and distinguished-lookingâdark, melancholy, inscrutable eyesâmelting, musical, sympathetic voiceâyes, the very hero of her dreams stood before her in the flesh. He could not have more closely resembled her ideal if he had been made to order. âThank you,â she said confusedly. âWeâd better hurry over to that little pavillion on the point,â suggested the unknown. âWe can wait there until this shower is over. It is not likely to rain so heavily very long.â The words were very commonplace, but oh, the tone! And the smile which accompanied them! Anne felt her heart beating strangely. Together they scurried to the pavilion and sat breathlessly down under its friendly roof. Anne laughingly held up her false umbrella. âIt is when my umbrella turns inside out that I am convinced of the total depravity of inanimate things,â she said gaily. The raindrops sparkled on her shining hair; its loosened rings curled around her neck and forehead. Her cheeks were flushed, her eyes big and starry. Her companion looked down at her admiringly. She felt herself blushing under his gaze. Who could he be? Why, there was a bit of the Redmond white and scarlet pinned to his coat lapel. Yet she had thought she knew, by sight at least, all the Redmond students except the Freshmen. And this courtly youth surely was no Freshman. âWe are schoolmates, I see,â he said, smiling at Anneâs colors. âThat ought to be sufficient introduction. My name is Royal Gardner. And you are the Miss Shirley who read the Tennyson paper at the Philomathic the other evening, arenât you?â âYes; but I cannot place you at all,â said Anne, frankly. âPlease, where _do_ you belong?â âI feel as if I didnât belong anywhere yet. I put in my Freshman and Sophomore years at Redmond two years ago. Iâve been in Europe ever since. Now Iâve come back to finish my Arts course.â âThis is my Junior year, too,â said Anne. âSo we are classmates as well as collegemates. I am reconciled to the loss of the years that the locust has eaten,â said her companion, with a world of meaning in those wonderful eyes of his. The rain came steadily down for the best part of an hour. But the time seemed really very short. When the clouds parted and a burst of pale November sunshine fell athwart the harbor and the pines Anne and her companion walked home together. By the time they had reached the gate of Pattyâs Place he had asked permission to call, and had received it. Anne went in with cheeks of flame and her heart beating to her fingertips. Rusty, who climbed into her lap and tried to kiss her, found a very absent welcome. Anne, with her soul full of romantic thrills, had no attention to spare just then for a crop-eared pussy cat. That evening a parcel was left at Pattyâs Place for Miss Shirley. It was a box containing a dozen magnificent roses. Phil pounced impertinently on the card that fell from it, read the name and the poetical quotation written on the back. âRoyal Gardner!â she exclaimed. âWhy, Anne, I didnât know you were acquainted with Roy Gardner!â âI met him in the park this afternoon in the rain,â explained Anne hurriedly. âMy umbrella turned inside out and he came to my rescue with his.â âOh!â Phil peered curiously at Anne. âAnd is that exceedingly commonplace incident any reason why he should send us longstemmed roses by the dozen, with a very sentimental rhyme? Or why we should blush divinest rosy-red when we look at his card? Anne, thy face betrayeth thee.â âDonât talk nonsense, Phil. Do you know Mr. Gardner?â âIâve met his two sisters, and I know of him. So does everybody worthwhile in Kingsport. The Gardners are among the richest, bluest, of Bluenoses. Roy is adorably handsome and clever. Two years ago his motherâs health failed and he had to leave college and go abroad with herâhis father is dead. He must have been greatly disappointed to have to give up his class, but they say he was perfectly sweet about it. Feeâfiâfoâfum, Anne. I smell romance. Almost do I envy you, but not quite. After all, Roy Gardner isnât Jonas.â âYou goose!â said Anne loftily. But she lay long awake that night, nor did she wish for sleep. Her waking fancies were more alluring than any vision of dreamland. Had the real Prince come at last? Recalling those glorious dark eyes which had gazed so deeply into her own, Anne was very strongly inclined to think he had. Chapter 26. Enter Christine. The girls at Pattyâs Place were dressing for the reception which the Juniors were giving for the Seniors in February. Anne surveyed herself in the mirror of the blue room with girlish satisfaction. She had a particularly pretty gown on. Originally it had been only a simple little slip of cream silk with a chiffon overdress. But Phil had insisted on taking it home with her in the Christmas holidays and embroidering tiny rosebuds all over the chiffon. Philâs fingers were deft, and the result was a dress which was the envy of every Redmond girl. Even Allie Boone, whose frocks came from Paris, was wont to look with longing eyes on that rosebud concoction as Anne trailed up the main staircase at Redmond in it. Anne was trying the effect of a white orchid in her hair. Roy Gardner had sent her white orchids for the reception, and she knew no other Redmond girl would have them that nightâwhen Phil came in with admiring gaze. âAnne, this is certainly your night for looking handsome. Nine nights out of ten I can easily outshine you. The tenth you blossom out suddenly into something that eclipses me altogether. How do you manage it?â âItâs the dress, dear. Fine feathers.â ââTisnât. The last evening you flamed out into beauty you wore your old blue flannel shirtwaist that Mrs. Lynde made you. If Roy hadnât already lost head and heart about you he certainly would tonight. But I donât like orchids on you, Anne. No; it isnât jealousy. Orchids donât seem to _belong_ to you. Theyâre too exoticâtoo tropicalâtoo insolent. Donât put them in your hair, anyway.â âWell, I wonât. I admit Iâm not fond of orchids myself. I donât think theyâre related to me. Roy doesnât often send themâhe knows I like flowers I can live with. Orchids are only things you can visit with.â âJonas sent me some dear pink rosebuds for the eveningâbutâhe isnât coming himself. He said he had to lead a prayer-meeting in the slums! I donât believe he wanted to come. Anne, Iâm horribly afraid Jonas doesnât really care anything about me. And Iâm trying to decide whether Iâll pine away and die, or go on and get my B.A. and be sensible and useful.â âYou couldnât possibly be sensible and useful, Phil, so youâd better pine away and die,â said Anne cruelly. âHeartless Anne!â âSilly Phil! You know quite well that Jonas loves you.â âButâhe wonât _tell_ me so. And I canât _make_ him. He _looks_ it, Iâll admit. But speak-to-me-only-with-thine-eyes isnât a really reliable reason for embroidering doilies and hemstitching tablecloths. I donât want to begin such work until Iâm really engaged. It would be tempting Fate.â âMr. Blake is afraid to ask you to marry him, Phil. He is poor and canât offer you a home such as youâve always had. You know that is the only reason he hasnât spoken long ago.â âI suppose so,â agreed Phil dolefully. âWellââbrightening upââif he _wonât_ ask me to marry him Iâll ask him, thatâs all. So itâs bound to come right. I wonât worry. By the way, Gilbert Blythe is going about constantly with Christine Stuart. Did you know?â Anne was trying to fasten a little gold chain about her throat. She suddenly found the clasp difficult to manage. _What_ was the matter with itâor with her fingers? âNo,â she said carelessly. âWho is Christine Stuart?â âRonald Stuartâs sister. Sheâs in Kingsport this winter studying music. I havenât seen her, but they say sheâs very pretty and that Gilbert is quite crazy over her. How angry I was when you refused Gilbert, Anne. But Roy Gardner was foreordained for you. I can see that now. You were right, after all.â Anne did not blush, as she usually did when the girls assumed that her eventual marriage to Roy Gardner was a settled thing. All at once she felt rather dull. Philâs chatter seemed trivial and the reception a bore. She boxed poor Rustyâs ears. âGet off that cushion instantly, you cat, you! Why donât you stay down where you belong?â Anne picked up her orchids and went downstairs, where Aunt Jamesina was presiding over a row of coats hung before the fire to warm. Roy Gardner was waiting for Anne and teasing the Sarah-cat while he waited. The Sarah-cat did not approve of him. She always turned her back on him. But everybody else at Pattyâs Place liked him very much. Aunt Jamesina, carried away by his unfailing and deferential courtesy, and the pleading tones of his delightful voice, declared he was the nicest young man she ever knew, and that Anne was a very fortunate girl. Such remarks made Anne restive. Royâs wooing had certainly been as romantic as girlish heart could desire, butâshe wished Aunt Jamesina and the girls would not take things so for granted. When Roy murmured a poetical compliment as he helped her on with her coat, she did not blush and thrill as usual; and he found her rather silent in their brief walk to Redmond. He thought she looked a little pale when she came out of the coedsâ dressing room; but as they entered the reception room her color and sparkle suddenly returned to her. She turned to Roy with her gayest expression. He smiled back at her with what Phil called âhis deep, black, velvety smile.â Yet she really did not see Roy at all. She was acutely conscious that Gilbert was standing under the palms just across the room talking to a girl who must be Christine Stuart. She was very handsome, in the stately style destined to become rather massive in middle life. A tall girl, with large dark-blue eyes, ivory outlines, and a gloss of darkness on her smooth hair. âShe looks just as Iâve always wanted to look,â thought Anne miserably. âRose-leaf complexionâstarry violet eyesâraven hairâyes, she has them all. Itâs a wonder her name isnât Cordelia Fitzgerald into the bargain! But I donât believe her figure is as good as mine, and her nose certainly isnât.â Anne felt a little comforted by this conclusion. Chapter 27. Mutual Confidences. March came in that winter like the meekest and mildest of lambs, bringing days that were crisp and golden and tingling, each followed by a frosty pink twilight which gradually lost itself in an elfland of moonshine. Over the girls at Pattyâs Place was falling the shadow of April examinations. They were studying hard; even Phil had settled down to text and notebooks with a doggedness not to be expected of her. âIâm going to take the Johnson Scholarship in Mathematics,â she announced calmly. âI could take the one in Greek easily, but Iâd rather take the mathematical one because I want to prove to Jonas that Iâm really enormously clever.â âJonas likes you better for your big brown eyes and your crooked smile than for all the brains you carry under your curls,â said Anne. âWhen I was a girl it wasnât considered lady-like to know anything about Mathematics,â said Aunt Jamesina. âBut times have changed. I donât know that itâs all for the better. Can you cook, Phil?â âNo, I never cooked anything in my life except a gingerbread and it was a failureâflat in the middle and hilly round the edges. You know the kind. But, Aunty, when I begin in good earnest to learn to cook donât you think the brains that enable me to win a mathematical scholarship will also enable me to learn cooking just as well?â âMaybe,â said Aunt Jamesina cautiously. âI am not decrying the higher education of women. My daughter is an M.A. She can cook, too. But I taught her to cook _before_ I let a college professor teach her Mathematics.â In mid-March came a letter from Miss Patty Spofford, saying that she and Miss Maria had decided to remain abroad for another year. âSo you may have Pattyâs Place next winter, too,â she wrote. âMaria and I are going to run over Egypt. I want to see the Sphinx once before I die.â âFancy those two dames ârunning over Egyptâ! I wonder if theyâll look up at the Sphinx and knit,â laughed Priscilla. âIâm so glad we can keep Pattyâs Place for another year,â said Stella. âI was afraid theyâd come back. And then our jolly little nest here would be broken upâand we poor callow nestlings thrown out on the cruel world of boardinghouses again.â âIâm off for a tramp in the park,â announced Phil, tossing her book aside. âI think when I am eighty Iâll be glad I went for a walk in the park tonight.â âWhat do you mean?â asked Anne. âCome with me and Iâll tell you, honey.â They captured in their ramble all the mysteries and magics of a March evening. Very still and mild it was, wrapped in a great, white, brooding silenceâa silence which was yet threaded through with many little silvery sounds which you could hear if you hearkened as much with your soul as your ears. The girls wandered down a long pineland aisle that seemed to lead right out into the heart of a deep-red, overflowing winter sunset. âIâd go home and write a poem this blessed minute if I only knew how,â declared Phil, pausing in an open space where a rosy light was staining the green tips of the pines. âItâs all so wonderful hereâthis great, white stillness, and those dark trees that always seem to be thinking.â ââThe woods were Godâs first temples,ââ quoted Anne softly. âOne canât help feeling reverent and adoring in such a place. I always feel so near Him when I walk among the pines.â âAnne, Iâm the happiest girl in the world,â confessed Phil suddenly. âSo Mr. Blake has asked you to marry him at last?â said Anne calmly. âYes. And I sneezed three times while he was asking me. Wasnât that horrid? But I said âyesâ almost before he finishedâI was so afraid he might change his mind and stop. Iâm besottedly happy. I couldnât really believe before that Jonas would ever care for frivolous me. âPhil, youâre not really frivolous,â said Anne gravely. ââWay down underneath that frivolous exterior of yours youâve got a dear, loyal, womanly little soul. Why do you hide it so?â âI canât help it, Queen Anne. You are rightâIâm not frivolous at heart. But thereâs a sort of frivolous skin over my soul and I canât take it off. As Mrs. Poyser says, Iâd have to be hatched over again and hatched different before I could change it. But Jonas knows the real me and loves me, frivolity and all. And I love him. I never was so surprised in my life as I was when I found out I loved him. Iâd never thought it possible to fall in love with an ugly man. Fancy me coming down to one solitary beau. And one named Jonas! But I mean to call him Jo. Thatâs such a nice, crisp little name. I couldnât nickname Alonzo.â âWhat about Alec and Alonzo?â âOh, I told them at Christmas that I never could marry either of them. It seems so funny now to remember that I ever thought it possible that I might. They felt so badly I just cried over both of themâhowled. But I knew there was only one man in the world I could ever marry. I had made up my own mind for once and it was real easy, too. Itâs very delightful to feel so sure, and know itâs your own sureness and not somebody elseâs.â âDo you suppose youâll be able to keep it up?â âMaking up my mind, you mean? I donât know, but Jo has given me a splendid rule. He says, when Iâm perplexed, just to do what I would wish I had done when I shall be eighty. Anyhow, Jo can make up his mind quickly enough, and it would be uncomfortable to have too much mind in the same house.â âWhat will your father and mother say?â âFather wonât say much. He thinks everything I do right. But mother _will_ talk. Oh, her tongue will be as Byrney as her nose. But in the end it will be all right.â âYouâll have to give up a good many things youâve always had, when you marry Mr. Blake, Phil.â âBut Iâll have _him_. I wonât miss the other things. Weâre to be married a year from next June. Jo graduates from St. Columbia this spring, you know. Then heâs going to take a little mission church down on Patterson Street in the slums. Fancy me in the slums! But Iâd go there or to Greenlandâs icy mountains with him.â âAnd this is the girl who would _never_ marry a man who wasnât rich,â commented Anne to a young pine tree. âOh, donât cast up the follies of my youth to me. I shall be poor as gaily as Iâve been rich. Youâll see. Iâm going to learn how to cook and make over dresses. Iâve learned how to market since Iâve lived at Pattyâs Place; and once I taught a Sunday School class for a whole summer. Aunt Jamesina says Iâll ruin Joâs career if I marry him. But I wonât. I know I havenât much sense or sobriety, but Iâve got what is ever so much betterâthe knack of making people like me. There is a man in Bolingbroke who lisps and always testifies in prayer-meeting. He says, âIf you canât thine like an electric thtar thine like a candlethtick.â Iâll be Joâs little candlestick.â âPhil, youâre incorrigible. Well, I love you so much that I canât make nice, light, congratulatory little speeches. But Iâm heart-glad of your happiness.â âI know. Those big gray eyes of yours are brimming over with real friendship, Anne. Some day Iâll look the same way at you. Youâre going to marry Roy, arenât you, Anne?â âMy dear Philippa, did you ever hear of the famous Betty Baxter, who ârefused a man before heâd axed herâ? I am not going to emulate that celebrated lady by either refusing or accepting any one before he âaxesâ me.â âAll Redmond knows that Roy is crazy about you,â said Phil candidly. âAnd you _do_ love him, donât you, Anne?â âIâI suppose so,â said Anne reluctantly. She felt that she ought to be blushing while making such a confession; but she was not; on the other hand, she always blushed hotly when any one said anything about Gilbert Blythe or Christine Stuart in her hearing. Gilbert Blythe and Christine Stuart were nothing to herâabsolutely nothing. But Anne had given up trying to analyze the reason of her blushes. As for Roy, of course she was in love with himâmadly so. How could she help it? Was he not her ideal? Who could resist those glorious dark eyes, and that pleading voice? Were not half the Redmond girls wildly envious? And what a charming sonnet he had sent her, with a box of violets, on her birthday! Anne knew every word of it by heart. It was very good stuff of its kind, too. Not exactly up to the level of Keats or Shakespeareâeven Anne was not so deeply in love as to think that. But it was very tolerable magazine verse. And it was addressed to _her_ânot to Laura or Beatrice or the Maid of Athens, but to her, Anne Shirley. To be told in rhythmical cadences that her eyes were stars of the morningâthat her cheek had the flush it stole from the sunriseâthat her lips were redder than the roses of Paradise, was thrillingly romantic. Gilbert would never have dreamed of writing a sonnet to her eyebrows. But then, Gilbert could see a joke. She had once told Roy a funny storyâand he had not seen the point of it. She recalled the chummy laugh she and Gilbert had had together over it, and wondered uneasily if life with a man who had no sense of humor might not be somewhat uninteresting in the long run. But who could expect a melancholy, inscrutable hero to see the humorous side of things? It would be flatly unreasonable. Chapter 28. A June Evening. âI wonder what it would be like to live in a world where it was always June,â said Anne, as she came through the spice and bloom of the twilit orchard to the front door steps, where Marilla and Mrs. Rachel were sitting, talking over Mrs. Samson Coatesâ funeral, which they had attended that day. Dora sat between them, diligently studying her lessons; but Davy was sitting tailor-fashion on the grass, looking as gloomy and depressed as his single dimple would let him. âYouâd get tired of it,â said Marilla, with a sigh. âI daresay; but just now I feel that it would take me a long time to get tired of it, if it were all as charming as today. Everything loves June. Davy-boy, why this melancholy November face in blossom-time?â âIâm just sick and tired of living,â said the youthful pessimist. âAt ten years? Dear me, how sad!â âIâm not making fun,â said Davy with dignity. âIâm disâdisâdiscouragedââbringing out the big word with a valiant effort. âWhy and wherefore?â asked Anne, sitting down beside him. ââCause the new teacher that come when Mr. Holmes got sick give me ten sums to do for Monday. Itâll take me all day tomorrow to do them. It isnât fair to have to work Saturdays. Milty Boulter said he wouldnât do them, but Marilla says Iâve got to. I donât like Miss Carson a bit.â âDonât talk like that about your teacher, Davy Keith,â said Mrs. Rachel severely. âMiss Carson is a very fine girl. There is no nonsense about her.â âThat doesnât sound very attractive,â laughed Anne. âI like people to have a little nonsense about them. But Iâm inclined to have a better opinion of Miss Carson than you have. I saw her in prayer-meeting last night, and she has a pair of eyes that canât always look sensible. Now, Davy-boy, take heart of grace. âTomorrow will bring another dayâ and Iâll help you with the sums as far as in me lies. Donât waste this lovely hour âtwixt light and dark worrying over arithmetic.â âWell, I wonât,â said Davy, brightening up. âIf you help me with the sums Iâll have ’em done in time to go fishing with Milty. I wish old Aunt Atossaâs funeral was tomorrow instead of today. I wanted to go to it ’cause Milty said his mother said Aunt Atossa would be sure to rise up in her coffin and say sarcastic things to the folks that come to see her buried. But Marilla said she didnât.â âPoor Atossa laid in her coffin peaceful enough,â said Mrs. Lynde solemnly. âI never saw her look so pleasant before, thatâs what. Well, there werenât many tears shed over her, poor old soul. The Elisha Wrights are thankful to be rid of her, and I canât say I blame them a mite.â âIt seems to me a most dreadful thing to go out of the world and not leave one person behind you who is sorry you are gone,â said Anne, shuddering. âNobody except her parents ever loved poor Atossa, thatâs certain, not even her husband,â averred Mrs. Lynde. âShe was his fourth wife. Heâd sort of got into the habit of marrying. He only lived a few years after he married her. The doctor said he died of dyspepsia, but I shall always maintain that he died of Atossaâs tongue, thatâs what. Poor soul, she always knew everything about her neighbors, but she never was very well acquainted with herself. Well, sheâs gone anyhow; and I suppose the next excitement will be Dianaâs wedding.â âIt seems funny and horrible to think of Dianaâs being married,â sighed Anne, hugging her knees and looking through the gap in the Haunted Wood to the light that was shining in Dianaâs room. âI donât see whatâs horrible about it, when sheâs doing so well,â said Mrs. Lynde emphatically. âFred Wright has a fine farm and he is a model young man.â âHe certainly isnât the wild, dashing, wicked, young man Diana once wanted to marry,â smiled Anne. âFred is extremely good.â âThatâs just what he ought to be. Would you want Diana to marry a wicked man? Or marry one yourself?â âOh, no. I wouldnât want to marry anybody who was wicked, but I think Iâd like it if he _could_ be wicked and _wouldnât_. Now, Fred is _hopelessly_ good.â âYouâll have more sense some day, I hope,â said Marilla. Marilla spoke rather bitterly. She was grievously disappointed. She knew Anne had refused Gilbert Blythe. Avonlea gossip buzzed over the fact, which had leaked out, nobody knew how. Perhaps Charlie Sloane had guessed and told his guesses for truth. Perhaps Diana had betrayed it to Fred and Fred had been indiscreet. At all events it was known; Mrs. Blythe no longer asked Anne, in public or private, if she had heard lately from Gilbert, but passed her by with a frosty bow. Anne, who had always liked Gilbertâs merry, young-hearted mother, was grieved in secret over this. Marilla said nothing; but Mrs. Lynde gave Anne many exasperated digs about it, until fresh gossip reached that worthy lady, through the medium of Moody Spurgeon MacPhersonâs mother, that Anne had another âbeauâ at college, who was rich and handsome and good all in one. After that Mrs. Rachel held her tongue, though she still wished in her inmost heart that Anne had accepted Gilbert. Riches were all very well; but even Mrs. Rachel, practical soul though she was, did not consider them the one essential. If Anne âlikedâ the Handsome Unknown better than Gilbert there was nothing more to be said; but Mrs. Rachel was dreadfully afraid that Anne was going to make the mistake of marrying for money. Marilla knew Anne too well to fear this; but she felt that something in the universal scheme of things had gone sadly awry. âWhat is to be, will be,â said Mrs. Rachel gloomily, âand what isnât to be happens sometimes. I canât help believing itâs going to happen in Anneâs case, if Providence doesnât interfere, thatâs what.â Mrs. Rachel sighed. She was afraid Providence wouldnât interfere; and she didnât dare to. Anne had wandered down to the Dryadâs Bubble and was curled up among the ferns at the root of the big white birch where she and Gilbert had so often sat in summers gone by. He had gone into the newspaper office again when college closed, and Avonlea seemed very dull without him. He never wrote to her, and Anne missed the letters that never came. To be sure, Roy wrote twice a week; his letters were exquisite compositions which would have read beautifully in a memoir or biography. Anne felt herself more deeply in love with him than ever when she read them; but her heart never gave the queer, quick, painful bound at sight of his letters which it had given one day when Mrs. Hiram Sloane had handed her out an envelope addressed in Gilbertâs black, upright handwriting. Anne had hurried home to the east gable and opened it eagerlyâto find a typewritten copy of some college society reportââonly that and nothing more.â Anne flung the harmless screed across her room and sat down to write an especially nice epistle to Roy. Diana was to be married in five more days. The gray house at Orchard Slope was in a turmoil of baking and brewing and boiling and stewing, for there was to be a big, old-timey wedding. Anne, of course, was to be bridesmaid, as had been arranged when they were twelve years old, and Gilbert was coming from Kingsport to be best man. Anne was enjoying the excitement of the various preparations, but under it all she carried a little heartache. She was, in a sense, losing her dear old chum; Dianaâs new home would be two miles from Green Gables, and the old constant companionship could never be theirs again. Anne looked up at Dianaâs light and thought how it had beaconed to her for many years; but soon it would shine through the summer twilights no more. Two big, painful tears welled up in her gray eyes. âOh,â she thought, âhow horrible it is that people have to grow upâand marryâand _change!_â Chapter 29. Dianaâs Wedding. âAfter all, the only real roses are the pink ones,â said Anne, as she tied white ribbon around Dianaâs bouquet in the westward-looking gable at Orchard Slope. âThey are the flowers of love and faith.â Diana was standing nervously in the middle of the room, arrayed in her bridal white, her black curls frosted over with the film of her wedding veil. Anne had draped that veil, in accordance with the sentimental compact of years before. âItâs all pretty much as I used to imagine it long ago, when I wept over your inevitable marriage and our consequent parting,â she laughed. âYou are the bride of my dreams, Diana, with the âlovely misty veilâ; and I am _your_ bridesmaid. But, alas! I havenât the puffed sleevesâthough these short lace ones are even prettier. Neither is my heart wholly breaking nor do I exactly hate Fred.â âWe are not really parting, Anne,â protested Diana. âIâm not going far away. Weâll love each other just as much as ever. Weâve always kept that âoathâ of friendship we swore long ago, havenât we?â âYes. Weâve kept it faithfully. Weâve had a beautiful friendship, Diana. Weâve never marred it by one quarrel or coolness or unkind word; and I hope it will always be so. But things canât be quite the same after this. Youâll have other interests. Iâll just be on the outside. But âsuch is lifeâ as Mrs. Rachel says. Mrs. Rachel has given you one of her beloved knitted quilts of the âtobacco stripeâ pattern, and she says when I am married sheâll give me one, too.â âThe mean thing about your getting married is that I wonât be able to be your bridesmaid,â lamented Diana. âIâm to be Philâs bridesmaid next June, when she marries Mr. Blake, and then I must stop, for you know the proverb âthree times a bridesmaid, never a bride,ââ said Anne, peeping through the window over the pink and snow of the blossoming orchard beneath. âHere comes the minister, Diana.â âOh, Anne,â gasped Diana, suddenly turning very pale and beginning to tremble. âOh, AnneâIâm so nervousâI canât go through with itâAnne, I know Iâm going to faint. âIf you do Iâll drag you down to the rainwater hogshed and drop you in,â said Anne unsympathetically. âCheer up, dearest. Getting married canât be so very terrible when so many people survive the ceremony. See how cool and composed I am, and take courage.â âWait till your turn comes, Miss Anne. Oh, Anne, I hear father coming upstairs. Give me my bouquet. Is my veil right? Am I very pale?â âYou look just lovely. Di, darling, kiss me good-bye for the last time. Diana Barry will never kiss me again.â âDiana Wright will, though. There, motherâs calling. Come.â Following the simple, old-fashioned way in vogue then, Anne went down to the parlor on Gilbertâs arm. They met at the top of the stairs for the first time since they had left Kingsport, for Gilbert had arrived only that day. Gilbert shook hands courteously. He was looking very well, though, as Anne instantly noted, rather thin. He was not pale; there was a flush on his cheek that had burned into it as Anne came along the hall towards him, in her soft, white dress with lilies-of-the-valley in the shining masses of her hair. As they entered the crowded parlor together a little murmur of admiration ran around the room. âWhat a fine-looking pair they are,â whispered the impressible Mrs. Rachel to Marilla. Fred ambled in alone, with a very red face, and then Diana swept in on her fatherâs arm. She did not faint, and nothing untoward occurred to interrupt the ceremony. Feasting and merry-making followed; then, as the evening waned, Fred and Diana drove away through the moonlight to their new home, and Gilbert walked with Anne to Green Gables. Something of their old comradeship had returned during the informal mirth of the evening. Oh, it was nice to be walking over that well-known road with Gilbert again! The night was so very still that one should have been able to hear the whisper of roses in blossomâthe laughter of daisiesâthe piping of grassesâmany sweet sounds, all tangled up together. The beauty of moonlight on familiar fields irradiated the world. âCanât we take a ramble up Loversâ Lane before you go in?â asked Gilbert as they crossed the bridge over the Lake of Shining Waters, in which the moon lay like a great, drowned blossom of gold. Anne assented readily. Loversâ Lane was a veritable path in a fairyland that nightâa shimmering, mysterious place, full of wizardry in the white-woven enchantment of moonlight. There had been a time when such a walk with Gilbert through Loversâ Lane would have been far too dangerous. But Roy and Christine had made it very safe now. Anne found herself thinking a good deal about Christine as she chatted lightly to Gilbert. She had met her several times before leaving Kingsport, and had been charmingly sweet to her. Christine had also been charmingly sweet. Indeed, they were a most cordial pair. But for all that, their acquaintance had not ripened into friendship. Evidently Christine was not a kindred spirit. âAre you going to be in Avonlea all summer?â asked Gilbert. âNo. Iâm going down east to Valley Road next week. Esther Haythorne wants me to teach for her through July and August. They have a summer term in that school, and Esther isnât feeling well. So Iâm going to substitute for her. In one way I donât mind. Do you know, Iâm beginning to feel a little bit like a stranger in Avonlea now? It makes me sorryâbut itâs true. Itâs quite appalling to see the number of children who have shot up into big boys and girlsâreally young men and womenâthese past two years. Half of my pupils are grown up. It makes me feel awfully old to see them in the places you and I and our mates used to fill.â Anne laughed and sighed. She felt very old and mature and wiseâwhich showed how young she was. She told herself that she longed greatly to go back to those dear merry days when life was seen through a rosy mist of hope and illusion, and possessed an indefinable something that had passed away forever. Where was it nowâthe glory and the dream? ââSo wags the world away,ââ quoted Gilbert practically, and a trifle absently. Anne wondered if he were thinking of Christine. Oh, Avonlea was going to be so lonely nowâwith Diana gone! Chapter 30. Mrs. Skinnerâs Romance. Anne stepped off the train at Valley Road station and looked about to see if any one had come to meet her. She was to board with a certain Miss Janet Sweet, but she saw no one who answered in the least to her preconception of that lady, as formed from Estherâs letter. The only person in sight was an elderly woman, sitting in a wagon with mail bags piled around her. Two hundred would have been a charitable guess at her weight; her face was as round and red as a harvest-moon and almost as featureless. She wore a tight, black, cashmere dress, made in the fashion of ten years ago, a little dusty black straw hat trimmed with bows of yellow ribbon, and faded black lace mits. âHere, you,â she called, waving her whip at Anne. âAre you the new Valley Road schoolmaâam?â âYes.â âWell, I thought so. Valley Road is noted for its good-looking schoolmaâams, just as Millersville is noted for its humly ones. Janet Sweet asked me this morning if I could bring you out. I said, âSartin I kin, if she donât mind being scrunched up some. This rig of mineâs kinder small for the mail bags and Iâm some heftier than Thomas!â Just wait, miss, till I shift these bags a bit and Iâll tuck you in somehow. Itâs only two miles to Janetâs. Her next-door neighborâs hired boy is coming for your trunk tonight. My name is SkinnerâAmelia Skinner.â Anne was eventually tucked in, exchanging amused smiles with herself during the process. âJog along, black mare,â commanded Mrs. Skinner, gathering up the reins in her pudgy hands. âThis is my first trip on the mail rowte. Thomas wanted to hoe his turnips today so he asked me to come. So I jest sot down and took a standing-up snack and started. I sorter like it. Oâ course itâs rather tejus. Part of the time I sits and thinks and the rest I jest sits. Jog along, black mare. I want to git home airly. Thomas is terrible lonesome when Iâm away. You see, we havenât been married very long.â âOh!â said Anne politely. âJust a month. Thomas courted me for quite a spell, though. It was real romantic.â Anne tried to picture Mrs. Skinner on speaking terms with romance and failed. âOh?â she said again. âYes. Yâsee, there was another man after me. Jog along, black mare. Iâd been a widder so long folks had given up expecting me to marry again. But when my darterâsheâs a schoolmaâam like youâwent out West to teach I felt real lonesome and wasnât nowise sot against the idea. Bime-by Thomas began to come up and so did the other fellerâWilliam Obadiah Seaman, his name was. For a long time I couldnât make up my mind which of them to take, and they kepâ coming and coming, and I kepâ worrying. Yâsee, W.O. was richâhe had a fine place and carried considerable style. He was by far the best match. Jog along, black mare.â âWhy didnât you marry him?â asked Anne. âWell, yâsee, he didnât love me,â answered Mrs. Skinner, solemnly. Anne opened her eyes widely and looked at Mrs. Skinner. But there was not a glint of humor on that ladyâs face. Evidently Mrs. Skinner saw nothing amusing in her own case. âHeâd been a widder-man for three yers, and his sister kept house for him. Then she got married and he just wanted some one to look after his house. It was worth looking after, too, mind you that. Itâs a handsome house. Jog along, black mare. As for Thomas, he was poor, and if his house didnât leak in dry weather it was about all that could be said for it, though it looks kind of pictureaskew. But, yâsee, I loved Thomas, and I didnât care one red cent for W.O. So I argued it out with myself. âSarah Crowe,â say Iâmy first was a Croweââyou can marry your rich man if you like but you wonât be happy. Folks canât get along together in this world without a little bit of love. Youâd just better tie up to Thomas, for he loves you and you love him and nothing else ainât going to do you.â Jog along, black mare. So I told Thomas Iâd take him. All the time I was getting ready I never dared drive past W.O.âs place for fear the sight of that fine house of his would put me in the swithers again. But now I never think of it at all, and Iâm just that comfortable and happy with Thomas. Jog along, black mare.â âHow did William Obadiah take it?â queried Anne. âOh, he rumpussed a bit. But heâs going to see a skinny old maid in Millersville now, and I guess sheâll take him fast enough. Sheâll make him a better wife than his first did. W.O. never wanted to marry her. He just asked her to marry him ’cause his father wanted him to, never dreaming but that sheâd say âno.â But mind you, she said âyes.â There was a predicament for you. Jog along, black mare. She was a great housekeeper, but most awful mean. She wore the same bonnet for eighteen years. Then she got a new one and W.O. met her on the road and didnât know her. Jog along, black mare. I feel that Iâd a narrer escape. I might have married him and been most awful miserable, like my poor cousin, Jane Ann. Jane Ann married a rich man she didnât care anything about, and she hasnât the life of a dog. She come to see me last week and says, says she, âSarah Skinner, I envy you. Iâd rather live in a little hut on the side of the road with a man I was fond of than in my big house with the one Iâve got.â Jane Annâs man ainât such a bad sort, nuther, though heâs so contrary that he wears his fur coat when the thermometerâs at ninety. The only way to git him to do anything is to coax him to do the opposite. But there ainât any love to smooth things down and itâs a poor way of living. Jog along, black mare. Thereâs Janetâs place in the hollowââWayside,â she calls it. Quite pictureaskew, ainât it? I guess youâll be glad to git out of this, with all them mail bags jamming round you.â âYes, but I have enjoyed my drive with you very much,â said Anne sincerely. âGit away now!â said Mrs. Skinner, highly flattered. âWait till I tell Thomas that. He always feels dretful tickled when I git a compliment. Jog along, black mare. Well, here we are. I hope youâll git on well in the school, miss. Thereâs a short cut to it through the maâsh back of Janetâs. If you take that way be awful keerful. If you once got stuck in that black mud youâd be sucked right down and never seen or heard tell of again till the day of judgment, like Adam Palmerâs cow. Jog along, black mare.â Chapter 31. Anne to Philippa. âAnne Shirley to Philippa Gordon, greeting. âWell-beloved, itâs high time I was writing you. Here am I, installed once more as a country âschoolmaâamâ at Valley Road, boarding at âWayside,â the home of Miss Janet Sweet. Janet is a dear soul and very nicelooking; tall, but not over-tall; stoutish, yet with a certain restraint of outline suggestive of a thrifty soul who is not going to be overlavish even in the matter of avoirdupois. She has a knot of soft, crimpy, brown hair with a thread of gray in it, a sunny face with rosy cheeks, and big, kind eyes as blue as forget-me-nots. Moreover, she is one of those delightful, old-fashioned cooks who donât care a bit if they ruin your digestion as long as they can give you feasts of fat things. âI like her; and she likes meâprincipally, it seems, because she had a sister named Anne who died young. ââIâm real glad to see you,â she said briskly, when I landed in her yard. âMy, you donât look a mite like I expected. I was sure youâd be darkâmy sister Anne was dark. And here youâre redheaded!â âFor a few minutes I thought I wasnât going to like Janet as much as I had expected at first sight. Then I reminded myself that I really must be more sensible than to be prejudiced against any one simply because she called my hair red. Probably the word âauburnâ was not in Janetâs vocabulary at all. ââWaysideâ is a dear sort of little spot. The house is small and white, set down in a delightful little hollow that drops away from the road. Between road and house is an orchard and flower-garden all mixed up together. The front door walk is bordered with quahog clam-shellsââcow-hawks,â Janet calls them; there is Virginia Creeper over the porch and moss on the roof. My room is a neat little spot âoff the parlorââjust big enough for the bed and me. Over the head of my bed there is a picture of Robby Burns standing at Highland Maryâs grave, shadowed by an enormous weeping willow tree. Robbyâs face is so lugubrious that it is no wonder I have bad dreams. Why, the first night I was here I dreamed I _couldnât laugh_. âThe parlor is tiny and neat. Its one window is so shaded by a huge willow that the room has a grotto-like effect of emerald gloom. There are wonderful tidies on the chairs, and gay mats on the floor, and books and cards carefully arranged on a round table, and vases of dried grass on the mantel-piece. Between the vases is a cheerful decoration of preserved coffin platesâfive in all, pertaining respectively to Janetâs father and mother, a brother, her sister Anne, and a hired man who died here once! If I go suddenly insane some of these days âknow all men by these presentsâ that those coffin-plates have caused it. âBut itâs all delightful and I said so. Janet loved me for it, just as she detested poor Esther because Esther had said so much shade was unhygienic and had objected to sleeping on a feather bed. Now, I glory in feather-beds, and the more unhygienic and feathery they are the more I glory. Janet says it is such a comfort to see me eat; she had been so afraid I would be like Miss Haythorne, who wouldnât eat anything but fruit and hot water for breakfast and tried to make Janet give up frying things. Esther is really a dear girl, but she is rather given to fads. The trouble is that she hasnât enough imagination and HAS a tendency to indigestion. âJanet told me I could have the use of the parlor when any young men called! I donât think there are many to call. I havenât seen a young man in Valley Road yet, except the next-door hired boyâSam Toliver, a very tall, lank, tow-haired youth. He came over one evening recently and sat for an hour on the garden fence, near the front porch where Janet and I were doing fancy-work. The only remarks he volunteered in all that time were, âHev a peppermint, miss! Dew now-fine thing for car_arrh_, peppermints,â and, âPowerful lot oâ jump-grasses round here ternight. Yep.â âBut there is a love affair going on here. It seems to be my fortune to be mixed up, more or less actively, with elderly love affairs. Mr. and Mrs. Irving always say that I brought about their marriage. Mrs. Stephen Clark of Carmody persists in being most grateful to me for a suggestion which somebody else would probably have made if I hadnât. I do really think, though, that Ludovic Speed would never have got any further along than placid courtship if I had not helped him and Theodora Dix out. âIn the present affair I am only a passive spectator. Iâve tried once to help things along and made an awful mess of it. So I shall not meddle again. Iâll tell you all about it when we meet.â Chapter 32. Tea with Mrs. Douglas. On the first Thursday night of Anneâs sojourn in Valley Road Janet asked her to go to prayer-meeting. Janet blossomed out like a rose to attend that prayer-meeting. She wore a pale-blue, pansy-sprinkled muslin dress with more ruffles than one would ever have supposed economical Janet could be guilty of, and a white leghorn hat with pink roses and three ostrich feathers on it. Anne felt quite amazed. Later on, she found out Janetâs motive in so arraying herselfâa motive as old as Eden. Valley Road prayer-meetings seemed to be essentially feminine. There were thirty-two women present, two half-grown boys, and one solitary man, beside the minister. Anne found herself studying this man. He was not handsome or young or graceful; he had remarkably long legsâso long that he had to keep them coiled up under his chair to dispose of themâand he was stoop-shouldered. His hands were big, his hair wanted barbering, and his moustache was unkempt. But Anne thought she liked his face; it was kind and honest and tender; there was something else in it, tooâjust what, Anne found it hard to define. She finally concluded that this man had suffered and been strong, and it had been made manifest in his face. There was a sort of patient, humorous endurance in his expression which indicated that he would go to the stake if need be, but would keep on looking pleasant until he really had to begin squirming. When prayer-meeting was over this man came up to Janet and said, âMay I see you home, Janet?â Janet took his armââas primly and shyly as if she were no more than sixteen, having her first escort home,â Anne told the girls at Pattyâs Place later on. âMiss Shirley, permit me to introduce Mr. Douglas,â she said stiffly. Mr. Douglas nodded and said, âI was looking at you in prayer-meeting, miss, and thinking what a nice little girl you were.â Such a speech from ninety-nine people out of a hundred would have annoyed Anne bitterly; but the way in which Mr. Douglas said it made her feel that she had received a very real and pleasing compliment. She smiled appreciatively at him and dropped obligingly behind on the moonlit road. So Janet had a beau! Anne was delighted. Janet would make a paragon of a wifeâcheery, economical, tolerant, and a very queen of cooks. It would be a flagrant waste on Natureâs part to keep her a permanent old maid. âJohn Douglas asked me to take you up to see his mother,â said Janet the next day. âSheâs bed-rid a lot of the time and never goes out of the house. But sheâs powerful fond of company and always wants to see my boarders. Can you go up this evening?â Anne assented; but later in the day Mr. Douglas called on his motherâs behalf to invite them up to tea on Saturday evening. âOh, why didnât you put on your pretty pansy dress?â asked Anne, when they left home. It was a hot day, and poor Janet, between her excitement and her heavy black cashmere dress, looked as if she were being broiled alive. âOld Mrs. Douglas would think it terrible frivolous and unsuitable, Iâm afraid. John likes that dress, though,â she added wistfully. The old Douglas homestead was half a mile from âWaysideâ cresting a windy hill. The house itself was large and comfortable, old enough to be dignified, and girdled with maple groves and orchards. There were big, trim barns behind it, and everything bespoke prosperity. Whatever the patient endurance in Mr. Douglasâ face had meant it hadnât, so Anne reflected, meant debts and duns. John Douglas met them at the door and took them into the sitting-room, where his mother was enthroned in an armchair. Anne had expected old Mrs. Douglas to be tall and thin, because Mr. Douglas was. Instead, she was a tiny scrap of a woman, with soft pink cheeks, mild blue eyes, and a mouth like a babyâs. Dressed in a beautiful, fashionably-made black silk dress, with a fluffy white shawl over her shoulders, and her snowy hair surmounted by a dainty lace cap, she might have posed as a grandmother doll. âHow do you do, Janet dear?â she said sweetly. âI am so glad to see you again, dear.â She put up her pretty old face to be kissed. âAnd this is our new teacher. Iâm delighted to meet you. My son has been singing your praises until Iâm half jealous, and Iâm sure Janet ought to be wholly so.â Poor Janet blushed, Anne said something polite and conventional, and then everybody sat down and made talk. It was hard work, even for Anne, for nobody seemed at ease except old Mrs. Douglas, who certainly did not find any difficulty in talking. She made Janet sit by her and stroked her hand occasionally. Janet sat and smiled, looking horribly uncomfortable in her hideous dress, and John Douglas sat without smiling. At the tea table Mrs. Douglas gracefully asked Janet to pour the tea. Janet turned redder than ever but did it. Anne wrote a description of that meal to Stella. âWe had cold tongue and chicken and strawberry preserves, lemon pie and tarts and chocolate cake and raisin cookies and pound cake and fruit cakeâand a few other things, including more pieâcaramel pie, I think it was. After I had eaten twice as much as was good for me, Mrs. Douglas sighed and said she feared she had nothing to tempt my appetite. ââIâm afraid dear Janetâs cooking has spoiled you for any other,â she said sweetly. âOf course nobody in Valley Road aspires to rival _her_. _Wonât_ you have another piece of pie, Miss Shirley? You havenât eaten _anything_.â âStella, I had eaten a helping of tongue and one of chicken, three biscuits, a generous allowance of preserves, a piece of pie, a tart, and a square of chocolate cake!â After tea Mrs. Douglas smiled benevolently and told John to take âdear Janetâ out into the garden and get her some roses. âMiss Shirley will keep me company while you are outâwonât you?â she said plaintively. She settled down in her armchair with a sigh. âI am a very frail old woman, Miss Shirley. For over twenty years Iâve been a great sufferer. For twenty long, weary years Iâve been dying by inches.â âHow painful!â said Anne, trying to be sympathetic and succeeding only in feeling idiotic. âThere have been scores of nights when theyâve thought I could never live to see the dawn,â went on Mrs. Douglas solemnly. âNobody knows what Iâve gone throughânobody can know but myself. Well, it canât last very much longer now. My weary pilgrimage will soon be over, Miss Shirley. It is a great comfort to me that John will have such a good wife to look after him when his mother is goneâa great comfort, Miss Shirley.â âJanet is a lovely woman,â said Anne warmly. âLovely! A beautiful character,â assented Mrs. Douglas. âAnd a perfect housekeeperâsomething I never was. My health would not permit it, Miss Shirley. I am indeed thankful that John has made such a wise choice. I hope and believe that he will be happy. He is my only son, Miss Shirley, and his happiness lies very near my heart.â âOf course,â said Anne stupidly. For the first time in her life she was stupid. Yet she could not imagine why. She seemed to have absolutely nothing to say to this sweet, smiling, angelic old lady who was patting her hand so kindly. âCome and see me soon again, dear Janet,â said Mrs. Douglas lovingly, when they left. âYou donât come half often enough. But then I suppose John will be bringing you here to stay all the time one of these days.â Anne, happening to glance at John Douglas, as his mother spoke, gave a positive start of dismay. He looked as a tortured man might look when his tormentors gave the rack the last turn of possible endurance. She felt sure he must be ill and hurried poor blushing Janet away. âIsnât old Mrs. Douglas a sweet woman?â asked Janet, as they went down the road. âMâm,â answered Anne absently. She was wondering why John Douglas had looked so. âSheâs been a terrible sufferer,â said Janet feelingly. âShe takes terrible spells. It keeps John all worried up. Heâs scared to leave home for fear his mother will take a spell and nobody there but the hired girl.â Chapter 33. âHe Just Kept Coming and Comingâ. Three days later Anne came home from school and found Janet crying. Tears and Janet seemed so incongruous that Anne was honestly alarmed. âOh, what is the matter?â she cried anxiously. âIâmâIâm forty today,â sobbed Janet. âWell, you were nearly that yesterday and it didnât hurt,â comforted Anne, trying not to smile. âButâbut,â went on Janet with a big gulp, âJohn Douglas wonât ask me to marry him.â âOh, but he will,â said Anne lamely. âYou must give him time, Janet âTime!â said Janet with indescribable scorn. âHe has had twenty years. How much time does he want?â âDo you mean that John Douglas has been coming to see you for twenty years?â âHe has. And he has never so much as mentioned marriage to me. And I donât believe he ever will now. Iâve never said a word to a mortal about it, but it seems to me Iâve just got to talk it out with some one at last or go crazy. John Douglas begun to go with me twenty years ago, before mother died. Well, he kept coming and coming, and after a spell I begun making quilts and things; but he never said anything about getting married, only just kept coming and coming. There wasnât anything I could do. Mother died when weâd been going together for eight years. I thought he maybe would speak out then, seeing as I was left alone in the world. He was real kind and feeling, and did everything he could for me, but he never said marry. And thatâs the way it has been going on ever since. People blame _me_ for it. They say I wonât marry him because his mother is so sickly and I donât want the bother of waiting on her. Why, Iâd _love_ to wait on Johnâs mother! But I let them think so. Iâd rather theyâd blame me than pity me! Itâs so dreadful humiliating that John wonât ask me. And _why_ wonât he? Seems to me if I only knew his reason I wouldnât mind it so much.â âPerhaps his mother doesnât want him to marry anybody,â suggested Anne. âOh, she does. Sheâs told me time and again that sheâd love to see John settled before her time comes. Sheâs always giving him hintsâyou heard her yourself the other day. I thought Iâd haâ gone through the floor.â âItâs beyond me,â said Anne helplessly. She thought of Ludovic Speed. But the cases were not parallel. John Douglas was not a man of Ludovicâs type. âYou should show more spirit, Janet,â she went on resolutely. âWhy didnât you send him about his business long ago?â âI couldnât,â said poor Janet pathetically. âYou see, Anne, Iâve always been awful fond of John. He might just as well keep coming as not, for there was never anybody else Iâd want, so it didnât matter.â âBut it might have made him speak out like a man,â urged Anne. Janet shook her head. âNo, I guess not. I was afraid to try, anyway, for fear heâd think I meant it and just go. I suppose Iâm a poor-spirited creature, but that is how I feel. And I canât help it.â âOh, you _could_ help it, Janet. It isnât too late yet. Take a firm stand. Let that man know you are not going to endure his shillyshallying any longer. _Iâll_ back you up.â âI dunno,â said Janet hopelessly. âI dunno if I could ever get up enough spunk. Things have drifted so long. But Iâll think it over.â Anne felt that she was disappointed in John Douglas. She had liked him so well, and she had not thought him the sort of man who would play fast and loose with a womanâs feelings for twenty years. He certainly should be taught a lesson, and Anne felt vindictively that she would enjoy seeing the process. Therefore she was delighted when Janet told her, as they were going to prayer-meeting the next night, that she meant to show some âsperrit.â âIâll let John Douglas see Iâm not going to be trodden on any longer.â âYou are perfectly right,â said Anne emphatically. When prayer-meeting was over John Douglas came up with his usual request. Janet looked frightened but resolute. âNo, thank you,â she said icily. âI know the road home pretty well alone. I ought to, seeing Iâve been traveling it for forty years. So you neednât trouble yourself, _Mr_. Douglas.â Anne was looking at John Douglas; and, in that brilliant moonlight, she saw the last twist of the rack again. Without a word he turned and strode down the road. âStop! Stop!â Anne called wildly after him, not caring in the least for the other dumbfounded onlookers. âMr. Douglas, stop! Come back.â John Douglas stopped but he did not come back. Anne flew down the road, caught his arm and fairly dragged him back to Janet. âYou must come back,â she said imploringly. âItâs all a mistake, Mr. Douglasâall my fault. I made Janet do it. She didnât want toâbut itâs all right now, isnât it, Janet?â Without a word Janet took his arm and walked away. Anne followed them meekly home and slipped in by the back door. âWell, you are a nice person to back me up,â said Janet sarcastically. âI couldnât help it, Janet,â said Anne repentantly. âI just felt as if I had stood by and seen murder done. I _had_ to run after him.â âOh, Iâm just as glad you did. When I saw John Douglas making off down that road I just felt as if every little bit of joy and happiness that was left in my life was going with him. It was an awful feeling.â âDid he ask you why you did it?â asked Anne. âNo, he never said a word about it,â replied Janet dully. Chapter 34. John Douglas Speaks at Last. Anne was not without a feeble hope that something might come of it after all. But nothing did. John Douglas came and took Janet driving, and walked home from prayer-meeting with her, as he had been doing for twenty years, and as he seemed likely to do for twenty years more. The summer waned. Anne taught her school and wrote letters and studied a little. Her walks to and from school were pleasant. She always went by way of the swamp; it was a lovely placeâa boggy soil, green with the greenest of mossy hillocks; a silvery brook meandered through it and spruces stood erectly, their boughs a-trail with gray-green mosses, their roots overgrown with all sorts of woodland lovelinesses. Nevertheless, Anne found life in Valley Road a little monotonous. To be sure, there was one diverting incident. She had not seen the lank, tow-headed Samuel of the peppermints since the evening of his call, save for chance meetings on the road. But one warm August night he appeared, and solemnly seated himself on the rustic bench by the porch. He wore his usual working habiliments, consisting of varipatched trousers, a blue jean shirt, out at the elbows, and a ragged straw hat. He was chewing a straw and he kept on chewing it while he looked solemnly at Anne. Anne laid her book aside with a sigh and took up her doily. Conversation with Sam was really out of the question. After a long silence Sam suddenly spoke. âIâm leaving over there,â he said abruptly, waving his straw in the direction of the neighboring house. âOh, are you?â said Anne politely. âYep.â âAnd where are you going now?â âWall, Iâve been thinking some of gitting a place of my own. Thereâs one thatâd suit me over at Millersville. But ef I rents it Iâll want a woman.â âI suppose so,â said Anne vaguely. âYep.â There was another long silence. Finally Sam removed his straw again and said, âWill yeh hev me?â âWhâaât!â gasped Anne. âWill yeh hev me?â âDo you meanâMARRY you?â queried poor Anne feebly. âYep.â âWhy, Iâm hardly acquainted with you,â cried Anne indignantly. âBut yehâd git acquainted with me after we was married,â said Sam. Anne gathered up her poor dignity. âCertainly I wonât marry you,â she said haughtily. âWall, yeh might do worse,â expostulated Sam. âIâm a good worker and Iâve got some money in the bank.â âDonât speak of this to me again. Whatever put such an idea into your head?â said Anne, her sense of humor getting the better of her wrath. It was such an absurd situation. âYehâre a likely-looking girl and hev a right-smart way oâ stepping,â said Sam. âI donât want no lazy woman. Think it over. I wonât change my mind yit awhile. Wall, I must be gitting. Gotter milk the cows.â Anneâs illusions concerning proposals had suffered so much of late years that there were few of them left. So she could laugh wholeheartedly over this one, not feeling any secret sting. She mimicked poor Sam to Janet that night, and both of them laughed immoderately over his plunge into sentiment. One afternoon, when Anneâs sojourn in Valley Road was drawing to a close, Alec Ward came driving down to âWaysideâ in hot haste for Janet. âThey want you at the Douglas place quick,â he said. âI really believe old Mrs. Douglas is going to die at last, after pretending to do it for twenty years.â Janet ran to get her hat. Anne asked if Mrs. Douglas was worse than usual. âSheâs not half as bad,â said Alec solemnly, âand thatâs what makes me think itâs serious. Other times sheâd be screaming and throwing herself all over the place. This time sheâs lying still and mum. When Mrs. Douglas is mum she is pretty sick, you bet.â âYou donât like old Mrs. Douglas?â said Anne curiously. âI like cats as _is_ cats. I donât like cats as is women,â was Alecâs cryptic reply. Janet came home in the twilight. âMrs. Douglas is dead,â she said wearily. âShe died soon after I got there. She just spoke to me onceââI suppose youâll marry John now?â she said. It cut me to the heart, Anne. To think Johnâs own mother thought I wouldnât marry him because of her! I couldnât say a word eitherâthere were other women there. I was thankful John had gone out.â Janet began to cry drearily. But Anne brewed her a hot drink of ginger tea to her comforting. To be sure, Anne discovered later on that she had used white pepper instead of ginger; but Janet never knew the difference. The evening after the funeral Janet and Anne were sitting on the front porch steps at sunset. The wind had fallen asleep in the pinelands and lurid sheets of heat-lightning flickered across the northern skies. Janet wore her ugly black dress and looked her very worst, her eyes and nose red from crying. They talked little, for Janet seemed faintly to resent Anneâs efforts to cheer her up. She plainly preferred to be miserable. Suddenly the gate-latch clicked and John Douglas strode into the garden. He walked towards them straight over the geranium bed. Janet stood up. So did Anne. Anne was a tall girl and wore a white dress; but John Douglas did not see her. âJanet,â he said, âwill you marry me?â The words burst out as if they had been wanting to be said for twenty years and _must_ be uttered now, before anything else. Janetâs face was so red from crying that it couldnât turn any redder, so it turned a most unbecoming purple. âWhy didnât you ask me before?â she said slowly. âI couldnât. She made me promise not toâmother made me promise not to. Nineteen years ago she took a terrible spell. We thought she couldnât live through it. She implored me to promise not to ask you to marry me while she was alive. I didnât want to promise such a thing, even though we all thought she couldnât live very longâthe doctor only gave her six months. But she begged it on her knees, sick and suffering. I had to promise.â âWhat had your mother against me?â cried Janet. âNothingânothing. She just didnât want another womanâ_any_ womanâthere while she was living. She said if I didnât promise sheâd die right there and Iâd have killed her. So I promised. And sheâs held me to that promise ever since, though Iâve gone on my knees to her in my turn to beg her to let me off.â âWhy didnât you tell me this?â asked Janet chokingly. âIf Iâd only _known!_ Why didnât you just tell me?â âShe made me promise I wouldnât tell a soul,â said John hoarsely. âShe swore me to it on the Bible; Janet, Iâd never have done it if Iâd dreamed it was to be for so long. Janet, youâll never know what Iâve suffered these nineteen years. I know Iâve made you suffer, too, but youâll marry me for all, wonât you, Janet? Oh, Janet, wonât you? Iâve come as soon as I could to ask you.â At this moment the stupefied Anne came to her senses and realized that she had no business to be there. She slipped away and did not see Janet until the next morning, when the latter told her the rest of the story. âThat cruel, relentless, deceitful old woman!â cried Anne. âHushâsheâs dead,â said Janet solemnly. âIf she wasnâtâbut she _is_. So we mustnât speak evil of her. But Iâm happy at last, Anne. And I wouldnât have minded waiting so long a bit if Iâd only known why.â âWhen are you to be married?â âNext month. Of course it will be very quiet. I suppose people will talk terrible. Theyâll say I made enough haste to snap John up as soon as his poor mother was out of the way. John wanted to let them know the truth but I said, âNo, John; after all she was your mother, and weâll keep the secret between us, and not cast any shadow on her memory. I donât mind what people say, now that I know the truth myself. It donât matter a mite. Let it all be buried with the deadâ says I to him. So I coaxed him round to agree with me.â âYouâre much more forgiving than I could ever be,â Anne said, rather crossly. âYouâll feel differently about a good many things when you get to be my age,â said Janet tolerantly. âThatâs one of the things we learn as we grow olderâhow to forgive. It comes easier at forty than it did at twenty.â Chapter 35. The Last Redmond Year Opens. âHere we are, all back again, nicely sunburned and rejoicing as a strong man to run a race,â said Phil, sitting down on a suitcase with a sigh of pleasure. âIsnât it jolly to see this dear old Pattyâs Place againâand Auntyâand the cats? Rusty has lost another piece of ear, hasnât he?â âRusty would be the nicest cat in the world if he had no ears at all,â declared Anne loyally from her trunk, while Rusty writhed about her lap in a frenzy of welcome. âArenât you glad to see us back, Aunty?â demanded Phil. âYes. But I wish youâd tidy things up,â said Aunt Jamesina plaintively, looking at the wilderness of trunks and suitcases by which the four laughing, chattering girls were surrounded. âYou can talk just as well later on. Work first and then play used to be my motto when I was a girl.â âOh, weâve just reversed that in this generation, Aunty. _Our_ motto is play your play and then dig in. You can do your work so much better if youâve had a good bout of play first.â âIf you are going to marry a minister,â said Aunt Jamesina, picking up Joseph and her knitting and resigning herself to the inevitable with the charming grace that made her the queen of housemothers, âyou will have to give up such expressions as âdig in.ââ âWhy?â moaned Phil. âOh, why must a ministerâs wife be supposed to utter only prunes and prisms? I shanât. Everybody on Patterson Street uses slangâthat is to say, metaphorical languageâand if I didnât they would think me insufferably proud and stuck up.â âHave you broken the news to your family?â asked Priscilla, feeding the Sarah-cat bits from her lunchbasket. Phil nodded. âHow did they take it?â âOh, mother rampaged. But I stood rockfirmâeven I, Philippa Gordon, who never before could hold fast to anything. Father was calmer. Fatherâs own daddy was a minister, so you see he has a soft spot in his heart for the cloth. I had Jo up to Mount Holly, after mother grew calm, and they both loved him. But mother gave him some frightful hints in every conversation regarding what she had hoped for me. Oh, my vacation pathway hasnât been exactly strewn with roses, girls dear. ButâIâve won out and Iâve got Jo. Nothing else matters.â âTo you,â said Aunt Jamesina darkly. âNor to Jo, either,â retorted Phil. âYou keep on pitying him. Why, pray? I think heâs to be envied. Heâs getting brains, beauty, and a heart of gold in _me_.â âItâs well we know how to take your speeches,â said Aunt Jamesina patiently. âI hope you donât talk like that before strangers. What would they think?â âOh, I donât want to know what they think. I donât want to see myself as others see me. Iâm sure it would be horribly uncomfortable most of the time. I donât believe Burns was really sincere in that prayer, either.â âOh, I daresay we all pray for some things that we really donât want, if we were only honest enough to look into our hearts,â owned Aunt Jamesina candidly. âIâve a notion that such prayers donât rise very far. _I_ used to pray that I might be enabled to forgive a certain person, but I know now I really didnât want to forgive her. When I finally got that I _did_ want to I forgave her without having to pray about it.â âI canât picture you as being unforgiving for long,â said Stella. âOh, I used to be. But holding spite doesnât seem worth while when you get along in years.â âThat reminds me,â said Anne, and told the tale of John and Janet. âAnd now tell us about that romantic scene you hinted so darkly at in one of your letters,â demanded Phil. Anne acted out Samuelâs proposal with great spirit. The girls shrieked with laughter and Aunt Jamesina smiled. âIt isnât in good taste to make fun of your beaux,â she said severely; âbut,â she added calmly, âI always did it myself.â âTell us about your beaux, Aunty,â entreated Phil. âYou must have had any number of them.â âTheyâre not in the past tense,â retorted Aunt Jamesina. âIâve got them yet. There are three old widowers at home who have been casting sheepâs eyes at me for some time. You children neednât think you own all the romance in the world.â âWidowers and sheepâs eyes donât sound very romantic, Aunty.â âWell, no; but young folks arenât always romantic either. Some of my beaux certainly werenât. I used to laugh at them scandalous, poor boys. There was Jim Elwoodâhe was always in a sort of day-dreamânever seemed to sense what was going on. He didnât wake up to the fact that Iâd said ânoâ till a year after Iâd said it. When he did get married his wife fell out of the sleigh one night when they were driving home from church and he never missed her. Then there was Dan Winston. He knew too much. He knew everything in this world and most of what is in the next. He could give you an answer to any question, even if you asked him when the Judgment Day was to be. Milton Edwards was real nice and I liked him but I didnât marry him. For one thing, he took a week to get a joke through his head, and for another he never asked me. Horatio Reeve was the most interesting beau I ever had. But when he told a story he dressed it up so that you couldnât see it for frills. I never could decide whether he was lying or just letting his imagination run loose.â âAnd what about the others, Aunty?â âGo away and unpack,â said Aunt Jamesina, waving Joseph at them by mistake for a needle. âThe others were too nice to make fun of. I shall respect their memory. Thereâs a box of flowers in your room, Anne. They came about an hour ago.â After the first week the girls of Pattyâs Place settled down to a steady grind of study; for this was their last year at Redmond and graduation honors must be fought for persistently. Anne devoted herself to English, Priscilla pored over classics, and Philippa pounded away at Mathematics. Sometimes they grew tired, sometimes they felt discouraged, sometimes nothing seemed worth the struggle for it. In one such mood Stella wandered up to the blue room one rainy November evening. Anne sat on the floor in a little circle of light cast by the lamp beside her, amid a surrounding snow of crumpled manuscript. âWhat in the world are you doing?â âJust looking over some old Story Club yarns. I wanted something to cheer _and_ inebriate. Iâd studied until the world seemed azure. So I came up here and dug these out of my trunk. They are so drenched in tears and tragedy that they are excruciatingly funny.â âIâm blue and discouraged myself,â said Stella, throwing herself on the couch. âNothing seems worthwhile. My very thoughts are old. Iâve thought them all before. What is the use of living after all, Anne?â âHoney, itâs just brain fag that makes us feel that way, and the weather. A pouring rainy night like this, coming after a hard dayâs grind, would squelch any one but a Mark Tapley. You know it _is_ worthwhile to live.â âOh, I suppose so. But I canât prove it to myself just now.â âJust think of all the great and noble souls who have lived and worked in the world,â said Anne dreamily. âIsnât it worthwhile to come after them and inherit what they won and taught? Isnât it worthwhile to think we can share their inspiration? And then, all the great souls that will come in the future? Isnât it worthwhile to work a little and prepare the way for themâmake just one step in their path easier?â âOh, my mind agrees with you, Anne. But my soul remains doleful and uninspired. Iâm always grubby and dingy on rainy nights.â âSome nights I like the rainâI like to lie in bed and hear it pattering on the roof and drifting through the pines.â âI like it when it stays on the roof,â said Stella. âIt doesnât always. I spent a gruesome night in an old country farmhouse last summer. The roof leaked and the rain came pattering down on my bed. There was no poetry in _that_. I had to get up in the âmirk midnightâ and chivy round to pull the bedstead out of the dripâand it was one of those solid, old-fashioned beds that weigh a tonâmore or less. And then that drip-drop, drip-drop kept up all night until my nerves just went to pieces. Youâve no idea what an eerie noise a great drop of rain falling with a mushy thud on a bare floor makes in the night. It sounds like ghostly footsteps and all that sort of thing. What are you laughing over, Anne?â âThese stories. As Phil would say they are killingâin more senses than one, for everybody died in them. What dazzlingly lovely heroines we hadâand how we dressed them! âSilksâsatinsâvelvetsâjewelsâlacesâthey never wore anything else. Here is one of Jane Andrewsâ stories depicting her heroine as sleeping in a beautiful white satin nightdress trimmed with seed pearls.â âGo on,â said Stella. âI begin to feel that life is worth living as long as thereâs a laugh in it.â âHereâs one I wrote. My heroine is disporting herself at a ball âglittering from head to foot with large diamonds of the first water.â But what booted beauty or rich attire? âThe paths of glory lead but to the grave.â They must either be murdered or die of a broken heart. There was no escape for them.â âLet me read some of your stories.â âWell, hereâs my masterpiece. Note its cheerful titleââMy Graves.â I shed quarts of tears while writing it, and the other girls shed gallons while I read it. Jane Andrewsâ mother scolded her frightfully because she had so many handkerchiefs in the wash that week. Itâs a harrowing tale of the wanderings of a Methodist ministerâs wife. I made her a Methodist because it was necessary that she should wander. She buried a child every place she lived in. There were nine of them and their graves were severed far apart, ranging from Newfoundland to Vancouver. I described the children, pictured their several death beds, and detailed their tombstones and epitaphs. I had intended to bury the whole nine but when I had disposed of eight my invention of horrors gave out and I permitted the ninth to live as a hopeless cripple.â While Stella read My Graves, punctuating its tragic paragraphs with chuckles, and Rusty slept the sleep of a just cat who has been out all night curled up on a Jane Andrews tale of a beautiful maiden of fifteen who went to nurse in a leper colonyâof course dying of the loathsome disease finallyâAnne glanced over the other manuscripts and recalled the old days at Avonlea school when the members of the Story Club, sitting under the spruce trees or down among the ferns by the brook, had written them. What fun they had had! How the sunshine and mirth of those olden summers returned as she read. Not all the glory that was Greece or the grandeur that was Rome could weave such wizardry as those funny, tearful tales of the Story Club. Among the manuscripts Anne found one written on sheets of wrapping paper. A wave of laughter filled her gray eyes as she recalled the time and place of its genesis. It was the sketch she had written the day she fell through the roof of the Cobb duckhouse on the Tory Road. Anne glanced over it, then fell to reading it intently. It was a little dialogue between asters and sweet-peas, wild canaries in the lilac bush, and the guardian spirit of the garden. After she had read it, she sat, staring into space; and when Stella had gone she smoothed out the crumpled manuscript. âI believe I will,â she said resolutely. Chapter 36. The GardnersâCall. âHere is a letter with an Indian stamp for you, Aunt Jimsie,â said Phil. âHere are three for Stella, and two for Pris, and a glorious fat one for me from Jo. Thereâs nothing for you, Anne, except a circular.â Nobody noticed Anneâs flush as she took the thin letter Phil tossed her carelessly. But a few minutes later Phil looked up to see a transfigured Anne. âHoney, what good thing has happened?â âThe Youthâs Friend has accepted a little sketch I sent them a fortnight ago,â said Anne, trying hard to speak as if she were accustomed to having sketches accepted every mail, but not quite succeeding. âAnne Shirley! How glorious! What was it? When is it to be published? Did they pay you for it?â âYes; theyâve sent a check for ten dollars, and the editor writes that he would like to see more of my work. Dear man, he shall. It was an old sketch I found in my box. I re-wrote it and sent it inâbut I never really thought it could be accepted because it had no plot,â said Anne, recalling the bitter experience of Averilâs Atonement. âWhat are you going to do with that ten dollars, Anne? Letâs all go up town and get drunk,â suggested Phil. âI _am_ going to squander it in a wild soulless revel of some sort,â declared Anne gaily. âAt all events it isnât tainted moneyâlike the check I got for that horrible Reliable Baking Powder story. I spent _it_ usefully for clothes and hated them every time I put them on.â âThink of having a real live author at Pattyâs Place,â said Priscilla. âItâs a great responsibility,â said Aunt Jamesina solemnly. âIndeed it is,â agreed Pris with equal solemnity. âAuthors are kittle cattle. You never know when or how they will break out. Anne may make copy of us.â âI meant that the ability to write for the Press was a great responsibility,â said Aunt Jamesina severely, âand I hope Anne realizes, it. My daughter used to write stories before she went to the foreign field, but now she has turned her attention to higher things. She used to say her motto was âNever write a line you would be ashamed to read at your own funeral.â Youâd better take that for yours, Anne, if you are going to embark in literature. Though, to be sure,â added Aunt Jamesina perplexedly, âElizabeth always used to laugh when she said it. She always laughed so much that I donât know how she ever came to decide on being a missionary. Iâm thankful she didâI prayed that she mightâbutâI wish she hadnât.â Then Aunt Jamesina wondered why those giddy girls all laughed. Anneâs eyes shone all that day; literary ambitions sprouted and budded in her brain; their exhilaration accompanied her to Jennie Cooperâs walking party, and not even the sight of Gilbert and Christine, walking just ahead of her and Roy, could quite subdue the sparkle of her starry hopes. Nevertheless, she was not so rapt from things of earth as to be unable to notice that Christineâs walk was decidedly ungraceful. âBut I suppose Gilbert looks only at her face. So like a man,â thought Anne scornfully. âShall you be home Saturday afternoon?â asked Roy. âYes.â âMy mother and sisters are coming to call on you,â said Roy quietly. Something went over Anne which might be described as a thrill, but it was hardly a pleasant one. She had never met any of Royâs family; she realized the significance of his statement; and it had, somehow, an irrevocableness about it that chilled her. âI shall be glad to see them,â she said flatly; and then wondered if she really would be glad. She ought to be, of course. But would it not be something of an ordeal? Gossip had filtered to Anne regarding the light in which the Gardners viewed the âinfatuationâ of son and brother. Roy must have brought pressure to bear in the matter of this call. Anne knew she would be weighed in the balance. From the fact that they had consented to call she understood that, willingly or unwillingly, they regarded her as a possible member of their clan. âI shall just be myself. I shall not _try_ to make a good impression,â thought Anne loftily. But she was wondering what dress she would better wear Saturday afternoon, and if the new style of high hair-dressing would suit her better than the old; and the walking party was rather spoiled for her. By night she had decided that she would wear her brown chiffon on Saturday, but would do her hair low. Friday afternoon none of the girls had classes at Redmond. Stella took the opportunity to write a paper for the Philomathic Society, and was sitting at the table in the corner of the living-room with an untidy litter of notes and manuscript on the floor around her. Stella always vowed she never could write anything unless she threw each sheet down as she completed it. Anne, in her flannel blouse and serge skirt, with her hair rather blown from her windy walk home, was sitting squarely in the middle of the floor, teasing the Sarah-cat with a wishbone. Joseph and Rusty were both curled up in her lap. A warm plummy odor filled the whole house, for Priscilla was cooking in the kitchen. Presently she came in, enshrouded in a huge work-apron, with a smudge of flour on her nose, to show Aunt Jamesina the chocolate cake she had just iced. At this auspicious moment the knocker sounded. Nobody paid any attention to it save Phil, who sprang up and opened it, expecting a boy with the hat she had bought that morning. On the doorstep stood Mrs. Gardner and her daughters. Anne scrambled to her feet somehow, emptying two indignant cats out of her lap as she did so, and mechanically shifting her wishbone from her right hand to her left. Priscilla, who would have had to cross the room to reach the kitchen door, lost her head, wildly plunged the chocolate cake under a cushion on the inglenook sofa, and dashed upstairs. Stella began feverishly gathering up her manuscript. Only Aunt Jamesina and Phil remained normal. Thanks to them, everybody was soon sitting at ease, even Anne. Priscilla came down, apronless and smudgeless, Stella reduced her corner to decency, and Phil saved the situation by a stream of ready small talk. Mrs. Gardner was tall and thin and handsome, exquisitely gowned, cordial with a cordiality that seemed a trifle forced. Aline Gardner was a younger edition of her mother, lacking the cordiality. She endeavored to be nice, but succeeded only in being haughty and patronizing. Dorothy Gardner was slim and jolly and rather tomboyish. Anne knew she was Royâs favorite sister and warmed to her. She would have looked very much like Roy if she had had dreamy dark eyes instead of roguish hazel ones. Thanks to her and Phil, the call really went off very well, except for a slight sense of strain in the atmosphere and two rather untoward incidents. Rusty and Joseph, left to themselves, began a game of chase, and sprang madly into Mrs. Gardnerâs silken lap and out of it in their wild career. Mrs. Gardner lifted her lorgnette and gazed after their flying forms as if she had never seen cats before, and Anne, choking back slightly nervous laughter, apologized as best she could. âYou are fond of cats?â said Mrs. Gardner, with a slight intonation of tolerant wonder. Anne, despite her affection for Rusty, was not especially fond of cats, but Mrs. Gardnerâs tone annoyed her. Inconsequently she remembered that Mrs. John Blythe was so fond of cats that she kept as many as her husband would allow. âThey _are_ adorable animals, arenât they?â she said wickedly. âI have never liked cats,â said Mrs. Gardner remotely. âI love them,â said Dorothy. âThey are so nice and selfish. Dogs are _too_ good and unselfish. They make me feel uncomfortable. But cats are gloriously human.â âYou have two delightful old china dogs there. May I look at them closely?â said Aline, crossing the room towards the fireplace and thereby becoming the unconscious cause of the other accident. Picking up Magog, she sat down on the cushion under which was secreted Priscillaâs chocolate cake. Priscilla and Anne exchanged agonized glances but could do nothing. The stately Aline continued to sit on the cushion and discuss china dogs until the time of departure. Dorothy lingered behind a moment to squeeze Anneâs hand and whisper impulsively. âI _know_ you and I are going to be chums. Oh, Roy has told me all about you. Iâm the only one of the family he tells things to, poor boyânobody _could_ confide in mamma and Aline, you know. What glorious times you girls must have here! Wonât you let me come often and have a share in them?â âCome as often as you like,â Anne responded heartily, thankful that one of Royâs sisters was likable. She would never like Aline, so much was certain; and Aline would never like her, though Mrs. Gardner might be won. Altogether, Anne sighed with relief when the ordeal was over. ââOf all sad words of tongue or pen The saddest are it might have been,ââ quoted Priscilla tragically, lifting the cushion. âThis cake is now what you might call a flat failure. And the cushion is likewise ruined. Never tell me that Friday isnât unlucky.â âPeople who send word they are coming on Saturday shouldnât come on Friday,â said Aunt Jamesina. âI fancy it was Royâs mistake,â said Phil. âThat boy isnât really responsible for what he says when he talks to Anne. Where _is_ Anne?â Anne had gone upstairs. She felt oddly like crying. But she made herself laugh instead. Rusty and Joseph had been _too_ awful! And Dorothy _was_ a dear. Chapter 37. Full-fledged B.A.âs. âI wish I were dead, or that it were tomorrow night,â groaned Phil. âIf you live long enough both wishes will come true,â said Anne calmly. âItâs easy for you to be serene. Youâre at home in Philosophy. Iâm notâand when I think of that horrible paper tomorrow I quail. If I should fail in it what would Jo say?â âYou wonât fail. How did you get on in Greek today?â âI donât know. Perhaps it was a good paper and perhaps it was bad enough to make Homer turn over in his grave. Iâve studied and mulled over notebooks until Iâm incapable of forming an opinion of anything. How thankful little Phil will be when all this examinating is over.â âExaminating? I never heard such a word.â âWell, havenât I as good a right to make a word as any one else?â demanded Phil. âWords arenât madeâthey grow,â said Anne. âNever mindâI begin faintly to discern clear water ahead where no examination breakers loom. Girls, do youâcan you realize that our Redmond Life is almost over?â âI canât,â said Anne, sorrowfully. âIt seems just yesterday that Pris and I were alone in that crowd of Freshmen at Redmond. And now we are Seniors in our final examinations.â ââPotent, wise, and reverend Seniors,ââ quoted Phil. âDo you suppose we really are any wiser than when we came to Redmond?â âYou donât act as if you were by times,â said Aunt Jamesina severely. âOh, Aunt Jimsie, havenât we been pretty good girls, take us by and large, these three winters youâve mothered us?â pleaded Phil. âYouâve been four of the dearest, sweetest, goodest girls that ever went together through college,â averred Aunt Jamesina, who never spoiled a compliment by misplaced economy. âBut I mistrust you havenât any too much sense yet. Itâs not to be expected, of course. Experience teaches sense. You canât learn it in a college course. Youâve been to college four years and I never was, but I know heaps more than you do, young ladies.â ââThere are lots of things that never go by rule, Thereâs a powerful pile oâ knowledge That you never get at college, There are heaps of things you never learn at school,ââ quoted Stella. âHave you learned anything at Redmond except dead languages and geometry and such trash?â queried Aunt Jamesina. âOh, yes. I think we have, Aunty,â protested Anne. âWeâve learned the truth of what Professor Woodleigh told us last Philomathic,â said Phil. âHe said, âHumor is the spiciest condiment in the feast of existence. Laugh at your mistakes but learn from them, joke over your troubles but gather strength from them, make a jest of your difficulties but overcome them.â Isnât that worth learning, Aunt Jimsie?â âYes, it is, dearie. When youâve learned to laugh at the things that should be laughed at, and not to laugh at those that shouldnât, youâve got wisdom and understanding.â âWhat have you got out of your Redmond course, Anne?â murmured Priscilla aside. âI think,â said Anne slowly, âthat I really have learned to look upon each little hindrance as a jest and each great one as the foreshadowing of victory. Summing up, I think that is what Redmond has given me.â âI shall have to fall back on another Professor Woodleigh quotation to express what it has done for me,â said Priscilla. âYou remember that he said in his address, âThere is so much in the world for us all if we only have the eyes to see it, and the heart to love it, and the hand to gather it to ourselvesâso much in men and women, so much in art and literature, so much everywhere in which to delight, and for which to be thankful.â I think Redmond has taught me that in some measure, Anne.â âJudging from what you all, sayâ remarked Aunt Jamesina, âthe sum and substance is that you can learnâif youâve got natural gumption enoughâin four years at college what it would take about twenty years of living to teach you. Well, that justifies higher education in my opinion. Itâs a matter I was always dubious about before. âBut what about people who havenât natural gumption, Aunt Jimsie?â âPeople who havenât natural gumption never learn,â retorted Aunt Jamesina, âneither in college nor life. If they live to be a hundred they really donât know anything more than when they were born. Itâs their misfortune not their fault, poor souls. But those of us who have some gumption should duly thank the Lord for it.â âWill you please define what gumption is, Aunt Jimsie?â asked Phil. âNo, I wonât, young woman. Any one who has gumption knows what it is, and any one who hasnât can never know what it is. So there is no need of defining it.â The busy days flew by and examinations were over. Anne took High Honors in English. Priscilla took Honors in Classics, and Phil in Mathematics. Stella obtained a good all-round showing. Then came Convocation. âThis is what I would once have called an epoch in my life,â said Anne, as she took Royâs violets out of their box and gazed at them thoughtfully. She meant to carry them, of course, but her eyes wandered to another box on her table. It was filled with lilies-of-the-valley, as fresh and fragrant as those which bloomed in the Green Gables yard when June came to Avonlea. Gilbert Blytheâs card lay beside it. Anne wondered why Gilbert should have sent her flowers for Convocation. She had seen very little of him during the past winter. He had come to Pattyâs Place only one Friday evening since the Christmas holidays, and they rarely met elsewhere. She knew he was studying very hard, aiming at High Honors and the Cooper Prize, and he took little part in the social doings of Redmond. Anneâs own winter had been quite gay socially. She had seen a good deal of the Gardners; she and Dorothy were very intimate; college circles expected the announcement of her engagement to Roy any day. Anne expected it herself. Yet just before she left Pattyâs Place for Convocation she flung Royâs violets aside and put Gilbertâs lilies-of-the-valley in their place. She could not have told why she did it. Somehow, old Avonlea days and dreams and friendships seemed very close to her in this attainment of her long-cherished ambitions. She and Gilbert had once picturedout merrily the day on which they should be capped and gowned graduates in Arts. The wonderful day had come and Royâs violets had no place in it. Only her old friendâs flowers seemed to belong to this fruition of old-blossoming hopes which he had once shared. For years this day had beckoned and allured to her; but when it came the one single, keen, abiding memory it left with her was not that of the breathless moment when the stately president of Redmond gave her cap and diploma and hailed her B.A.; it was not of the flash in Gilbertâs eyes when he saw her lilies, nor the puzzled pained glance Roy gave her as he passed her on the platform. It was not of Aline Gardnerâs condescending congratulations, or Dorothyâs ardent, impulsive good wishes. It was of one strange, unaccountable pang that spoiled this long-expected day for her and left in it a certain faint but enduring flavor of bitterness. The Arts graduates gave a graduation dance that night. When Anne dressed for it she tossed aside the pearl beads she usually wore and took from her trunk the small box that had come to Green Gables on Christmas day. In it was a thread-like gold chain with a tiny pink enamel heart as a pendant. On the accompanying card was written, âWith all good wishes from your old chum, Gilbert.â Anne, laughing over the memory the enamel heart conjured up the fatal day when Gilbert had called her âCarrotsâ and vainly tried to make his peace with a pink candy heart, had written him a nice little note of thanks. But she had never worn the trinket. Tonight she fastened it about her white throat with a dreamy smile. She and Phil walked to Redmond together. Anne walked in silence; Phil chattered of many things. Suddenly she said, âI heard today that Gilbert Blytheâs engagement to Christine Stuart was to be announced as soon as Convocation was over. Did you hear anything of it?â âNo,â said Anne. âI think itâs true,â said Phil lightly. Anne did not speak. In the darkness she felt her face burning. She slipped her hand inside her collar and caught at the gold chain. One energetic twist and it gave way. Anne thrust the broken trinket into her pocket. Her hands were trembling and her eyes were smarting. But she was the gayest of all the gay revellers that night, and told Gilbert unregretfully that her card was full when he came to ask her for a dance. Afterwards, when she sat with the girls before the dying embers at Pattyâs Place, removing the spring chilliness from their satin skins, none chatted more blithely than she of the dayâs events. âMoody Spurgeon MacPherson called here tonight after you left,â said Aunt Jamesina, who had sat up to keep the fire on. âHe didnât know about the graduation dance. That boy ought to sleep with a rubber band around his head to train his ears not to stick out. I had a beau once who did that and it improved him immensely. It was I who suggested it to him and he took my advice, but he never forgave me for it.â âMoody Spurgeon is a very serious young man,â yawned Priscilla. âHe is concerned with graver matters than his ears. He is going to be a minister, you know.â âWell, I suppose the Lord doesnât regard the ears of a man,â said Aunt Jamesina gravely, dropping all further criticism of Moody Spurgeon. Aunt Jamesina had a proper respect for the cloth even in the case of an unfledged parson. Chapter 38. False Dawn. âJust imagineâthis night week Iâll be in Avonleaâdelightful thought!â said Anne, bending over the box in which she was packing Mrs. Rachel Lyndeâs quilts. âBut just imagineâthis night week Iâll be gone forever from Pattyâs Placeâhorrible thought!â âI wonder if the ghost of all our laughter will echo through the maiden dreams of Miss Patty and Miss Maria,â speculated Phil. Miss Patty and Miss Maria were coming home, after having trotted over most of the habitable globe. âWeâll be back the second week in Mayâ wrote Miss Patty. âI expect Pattyâs Place will seem rather small after the Hall of the Kings at Karnak, but I never did like big places to live in. And Iâll be glad enough to be home again. When you start traveling late in life youâre apt to do too much of it because you know you havenât much time left, and itâs a thing that grows on you. Iâm afraid Maria will never be contented again.â âI shall leave here my fancies and dreams to bless the next comer,â said Anne, looking around the blue room wistfullyâher pretty blue room where she had spent three such happy years. She had knelt at its window to pray and had bent from it to watch the sunset behind the pines. She had heard the autumn raindrops beating against it and had welcomed the spring robins at its sill. She wondered if old dreams could haunt roomsâif, when one left forever the room where she had joyed and suffered and laughed and wept, something of her, intangible and invisible, yet nonetheless real, did not remain behind like a voiceful memory. âI think,â said Phil, âthat a room where one dreams and grieves and rejoices and lives becomes inseparably connected with those processes and acquires a personality of its own. I am sure if I came into this room fifty years from now it would say âAnne, Anneâ to me. What nice times weâve had here, honey! What chats and jokes and good chummy jamborees! Oh, dear me! Iâm to marry Jo in June and I know I will be rapturously happy. But just now I feel as if I wanted this lovely Redmond life to go on forever.â âIâm unreasonable enough just now to wish that, too,â admitted Anne. âNo matter what deeper joys may come to us later on weâll never again have just the same delightful, irresponsible existence weâve had here. Itâs over forever, Phil.â âWhat are you going to do with Rusty?â asked Phil, as that privileged pussy padded into the room. âI am going to take him home with me and Joseph and the Sarah-cat,â announced Aunt Jamesina, following Rusty. âIt would be a shame to separate those cats now that they have learned to live together. Itâs a hard lesson for cats and humans to learn.â âIâm sorry to part with Rusty,â said Anne regretfully, âbut it would be no use to take him to Green Gables. Marilla detests cats, and Davy would tease his life out. Besides, I donât suppose Iâll be home very long. Iâve been offered the principalship of the Summerside High School.â âAre you going to accept it?â asked Phil. âIâI havenât decided yet,â answered Anne, with a confused flush. Phil nodded understandingly. Naturally Anneâs plans could not be settled until Roy had spoken. He would soonâthere was no doubt of that. And there was no doubt that Anne would say âyesâ when he said âWill you please?â Anne herself regarded the state of affairs with a seldom-ruffled complacency. She was deeply in love with Roy. True, it was not just what she had imagined love to be. But was anything in life, Anne asked herself wearily, like oneâs imagination of it? It was the old diamond disillusion of childhood repeatedâthe same disappointment she had felt when she had first seen the chill sparkle instead of the purple splendor she had anticipated. âThatâs not my idea of a diamond,â she had said. But Roy was a dear fellow and they would be very happy together, even if some indefinable zest was missing out of life. When Roy came down that evening and asked Anne to walk in the park every one at Pattyâs Place knew what he had come to say; and every one knew, or thought they knew, what Anneâs answer would be. âAnne is a very fortunate girl,â said Aunt Jamesina. âI suppose so,â said Stella, shrugging her shoulders. âRoy is a nice fellow and all that. But thereâs really nothing in him.â âThat sounds very like a jealous remark, Stella Maynard,â said Aunt Jamesina rebukingly. âIt doesâbut I am not jealous,â said Stella calmly. âI love Anne and I like Roy. Everybody says she is making a brilliant match, and even Mrs. Gardner thinks her charming now. It all sounds as if it were made in heaven, but I have my doubts. Make the most of that, Aunt Jamesina.â Roy asked Anne to marry him in the little pavilion on the harbor shore where they had talked on the rainy day of their first meeting. Anne thought it very romantic that he should have chosen that spot. And his proposal was as beautifully worded as if he had copied it, as one of Ruby Gillisâ lovers had done, out of a Deportment of Courtship and Marriage. The whole effect was quite flawless. And it was also sincere. There was no doubt that Roy meant what he said. There was no false note to jar the symphony. Anne felt that she ought to be thrilling from head to foot. But she wasnât; she was horribly cool. When Roy paused for his answer she opened her lips to say her fateful yes. And thenâshe found herself trembling as if she were reeling back from a precipice. To her came one of those moments when we realize, as by a blinding flash of illumination, more than all our previous years have taught us. She pulled her hand from Royâs. âOh, I canât marry youâI canâtâI canât,â she cried, wildly. Roy turned paleâand also looked rather foolish. He hadâsmall blame to himâfelt very sure. âWhat do you mean?â he stammered. âI mean that I canât marry you,â repeated Anne desperately. âI thought I couldâbut I canât.â âWhy canât you?â Roy asked more calmly. âBecauseâI donât care enough for you.â A crimson streak came into Royâs face. âSo youâve just been amusing yourself these two years?â he said slowly. âNo, no, I havenât,â gasped poor Anne. Oh, how could she explain? She _couldnât_ explain. There are some things that cannot be explained. âI did think I caredâtruly I didâbut I know now I donât.â âYou have ruined my life,â said Roy bitterly. âForgive me,â pleaded Anne miserably, with hot cheeks and stinging eyes. Roy turned away and stood for a few minutes looking out seaward. When he came back to Anne, he was very pale again. âYou can give me no hope?â he said. Anne shook her head mutely. âThenâgood-bye,â said Roy. âI canât understand itâI canât believe you are not the woman Iâve believed you to be. But reproaches are idle between us. You are the only woman I can ever love. I thank you for your friendship, at least. Good-bye, Anne.â âGood-bye,â faltered Anne. When Roy had gone she sat for a long time in the pavilion, watching a white mist creeping subtly and remorselessly landward up the harbor. It was her hour of humiliation and self-contempt and shame. Their waves went over her. And yet, underneath it all, was a queer sense of recovered freedom. She slipped into Pattyâs Place in the dusk and escaped to her room. But Phil was there on the window seat. âWait,â said Anne, flushing to anticipate the scene. âWait til you hear what I have to say. Phil, Roy asked me to marry him-and I refused.â âYouâyou _refused_ him?â said Phil blankly. âYes.â âAnne Shirley, are you in your senses?â âI think so,â said Anne wearily. âOh, Phil, donât scold me. You donât understand.â âI certainly donât understand. Youâve encouraged Roy Gardner in every way for two yearsâand now you tell me youâve refused him. Then youâve just been flirting scandalously with him. Anne, I couldnât have believed it of _you_.â âI _wasnât_ flirting with himâI honestly thought I cared up to the last minuteâand thenâwell, I just knew I _never_ could marry him.â âI suppose,â said Phil cruelly, âthat you intended to marry him for his money, and then your better self rose up and prevented you.â âI _didntât_. I never thought about his money. Oh, I canât explain it to you any more than I could to him.â âWell, I certainly think you have treated Roy shamefully,â said Phil in exasperation. âHeâs handsome and clever and rich and good. What more do you want?â âI want some one who _belongs_ in my life. He doesnât. I was swept off my feet at first by his good looks and knack of paying romantic compliments; and later on I thought I _must_ be in love because he was my dark-eyed ideal.â âI am bad enough for not knowing my own mind, but you are worse,â said Phil. â_I_ _do_ know my own mind,â protested Anne. âThe trouble is, my mind changes and then I have to get acquainted with it all over again.â âWell, I suppose there is no use in saying anything to you.â âThere is no need, Phil. Iâm in the dust. This has spoiled everything backwards. I can never think of Redmond days without recalling the humiliation of this evening. Roy despises meâand you despise meâand I despise myself.â âYou poor darling,â said Phil, melting. âJust come here and let me comfort you. Iâve no right to scold you. Iâd have married Alec or Alonzo if I hadnât met Jo. Oh, Anne, things are so mixed-up in real life. They arenât clear-cut and trimmed off, as they are in novels.â âI hope that _no_ one will ever again ask me to marry him as long as I live,â sobbed poor Anne, devoutly believing that she meant it. Chapter 39. Deals with Weddings. Anne felt that life partook of the nature of an anticlimax during the first few weeks after her return to Green Gables. She missed the merry comradeship of Pattyâs Place. She had dreamed some brilliant dreams during the past winter and now they lay in the dust around her. In her present mood of self-disgust, she could not immediately begin dreaming again. And she discovered that, while solitude with dreams is glorious, solitude without them has few charms. She had not seen Roy again after their painful parting in the park pavilion; but Dorothy came to see her before she left Kingsport. âIâm awfully sorry you wonât marry Roy,â she said. âI did want you for a sister. But you are quite right. He would bore you to death. I love him, and he is a dear sweet boy, but really he isnât a bit interesting. He looks as if he ought to be, but he isnât.â âThis wonât spoil _our_ friendship, will it, Dorothy?â Anne had asked wistfully. âNo, indeed. Youâre too good to lose. If I canât have you for a sister I mean to keep you as a chum anyway. And donât fret over Roy. He is feeling terribly just nowâI have to listen to his outpourings every dayâbut heâll get over it. He always does.â âOhâ_always?_â said Anne with a slight change of voice. âSo he has âgot over itâ before?â âDear me, yes,â said Dorothy frankly. âTwice before. And he raved to me just the same both times. Not that the others actually refused himâthey simply announced their engagements to some one else. Of course, when he met you he vowed to me that he had never really loved beforeâthat the previous affairs had been merely boyish fancies. But I donât think you need worry.â Anne decided not to worry. Her feelings were a mixture of relief and resentment. Roy had certainly told her she was the only one he had ever loved. No doubt he believed it. But it was a comfort to feel that she had not, in all likelihood, ruined his life. There were other goddesses, and Roy, according to Dorothy, must needs be worshipping at some shrine. Nevertheless, life was stripped of several more illusions, and Anne began to think drearily that it seemed rather bare. She came down from the porch gable on the evening of her return with a sorrowful face. âWhat has happened to the old Snow Queen, Marilla?â âOh, I knew youâd feel bad over that,â said Marilla. âI felt bad myself. That tree was there ever since I was a young girl. It blew down in the big gale we had in March. It was rotten at the core.â âIâll miss it so,â grieved Anne. âThe porch gable doesnât seem the same room without it. Iâll never look from its window again without a sense of loss. And oh, I never came home to Green Gables before that Diana wasnât here to welcome me.â âDiana has something else to think of just now,â said Mrs. Lynde significantly. âWell, tell me all the Avonlea news,â said Anne, sitting down on the porch steps, where the evening sunshine fell over her hair in a fine golden rain. âThere isnât much news except what weâve wrote you,â said Mrs. Lynde. âI suppose you havenât heard that Simon Fletcher broke his leg last week. Itâs a great thing for his family. Theyâre getting a hundred things done that theyâve always wanted to do but couldnât as long as he was about, the old crank.â âHe came of an aggravating family,â remarked Marilla. âAggravating? Well, rather! His mother used to get up in prayer-meeting and tell all her childrenâs shortcomings and ask prayers for them. âCourse it made them mad, and worse than ever.â âYou havenât told Anne the news about Jane,â suggested Marilla. âOh, Jane,â sniffed Mrs. Lynde. âWell,â she conceded grudgingly, âJane Andrews is home from the Westâcame last weekâand sheâs going to be married to a Winnipeg millionaire. You may be sure Mrs. Harmon lost no time in telling it far and wide.â âDear old JaneâIâm so glad,â said Anne heartily. âShe deserves the good things of life.â âOh, I ainât saying anything against Jane. Sheâs a nice enough girl. But she isnât in the millionaire class, and youâll find thereâs not much to recommend that man but his money, thatâs what. Mrs. Harmon says heâs an Englishman who has made money in mines but _I_ believe heâll turn out to be a Yankee. He certainly must have money, for he has just showered Jane with jewelry. Her engagement ring is a diamond cluster so big that it looks like a plaster on Janeâs fat paw.â Mrs. Lynde could not keep some bitterness out of her tone. Here was Jane Andrews, that plain little plodder, engaged to a millionaire, while Anne, it seemed, was not yet bespoken by any one, rich or poor. And Mrs. Harmon Andrews did brag insufferably. âWhat has Gilbert Blythe been doing to at college?â asked Marilla. âI saw him when he came home last week, and he is so pale and thin I hardly knew him.â âHe studied very hard last winter,â said Anne. âYou know he took High Honors in Classics and the Cooper Prize. It hasnât been taken for five years! So I think heâs rather run down. Weâre all a little tired.â âAnyhow, youâre a B.A. and Jane Andrews isnât and never will be,â said Mrs. Lynde, with gloomy satisfaction. A few evenings later Anne went down to see Jane, but the latter was away in Charlottetownââgetting sewing done,â Mrs. Harmon informed Anne proudly. âOf course an Avonlea dressmaker wouldnât do for Jane under the circumstances.â âIâve heard something very nice about Jane,â said Anne. âYes, Jane has done pretty well, even if she isnât a B.A.,â said Mrs. Harmon, with a slight toss of her head. âMr. Inglis is worth millions, and theyâre going to Europe on their wedding tour. When they come back theyâll live in a perfect mansion of marble in Winnipeg. Jane has only one troubleâshe can cook so well and her husband wonât let her cook. He is so rich he hires his cooking done. Theyâre going to keep a cook and two other maids and a coachman and a man-of-all-work. But what about _you_, Anne? I donât hear anything of your being married, after all your college-going.â âOh,â laughed Anne, âI am going to be an old maid. I really canât find any one to suit me.â It was rather wicked of her. She deliberately meant to remind Mrs. Andrews that if she became an old maid it was not because she had not had at least one chance of marriage. But Mrs. Harmon took swift revenge. âWell, the over-particular girls generally get left, I notice. And whatâs this I hear about Gilbert Blythe being engaged to a Miss Stuart? Charlie Sloane tells me she is perfectly beautiful. Is it true?â âI donât know if it is true that he is engaged to Miss Stuart,â replied Anne, with Spartan composure, âbut it is certainly true that she is very lovely.â âI once thought you and Gilbert would have made a match of it,â said Mrs. Harmon. âIf you donât take care, Anne, all of your beaux will slip through your fingers.â Anne decided not to continue her duel with Mrs. Harmon. You could not fence with an antagonist who met rapier thrust with blow of battle axe. âSince Jane is away,â she said, rising haughtily, âI donât think I can stay longer this morning. Iâll come down when she comes home.â âDo,â said Mrs. Harmon effusively. âJane isnât a bit proud. She just means to associate with her old friends the same as ever. Sheâll be real glad to see you.â Janeâs millionaire arrived the last of May and carried her off in a blaze of splendor. Mrs. Lynde was spitefully gratified to find that Mr. Inglis was every day of forty, and short and thin and grayish. Mrs. Lynde did not spare him in her enumeration of his shortcomings, you may be sure. âIt will take all his gold to gild a pill like him, thatâs what,â said Mrs. Rachel solemnly. âHe looks kind and good-hearted,â said Anne loyally, âand Iâm sure he thinks the world of Jane.â âHumph!â said Mrs. Rachel. Phil Gordon was married the next week and Anne went over to Bolingbroke to be her bridesmaid. Phil made a dainty fairy of a bride, and the Rev. Jo was so radiant in his happiness that nobody thought him plain. âWeâre going for a loversâ saunter through the land of Evangeline,â said Phil, âand then weâll settle down on Patterson Street. Mother thinks it is terribleâshe thinks Jo might at least take a church in a decent place. But the wilderness of the Patterson slums will blossom like the rose for me if Jo is there. Oh, Anne, Iâm so happy my heart aches with it.â Anne was always glad in the happiness of her friends; but it is sometimes a little lonely to be surrounded everywhere by a happiness that is not your own. And it was just the same when she went back to Avonlea. This time it was Diana who was bathed in the wonderful glory that comes to a woman when her first-born is laid beside her. Anne looked at the white young mother with a certain awe that had never entered into her feelings for Diana before. Could this pale woman with the rapture in her eyes be the little black-curled, rosy-cheeked Diana she had played with in vanished schooldays? It gave her a queer desolate feeling that she herself somehow belonged only in those past years and had no business in the present at all. âIsnât he perfectly beautiful?â said Diana proudly. The little fat fellow was absurdly like Fredâjust as round, just as red. Anne really could not say conscientiously that she thought him beautiful, but she vowed sincerely that he was sweet and kissable and altogether delightful. âBefore he came I wanted a girl, so that I could call her ANNE,â said Diana. âBut now that little Fred is here I wouldnât exchange him for a million girls. He just _couldnât_ have been anything but his own precious self.â ââEvery little baby is the sweetest and the best,ââ quoted Mrs. Allan gaily. âIf little Anne _had_ come youâd have felt just the same about her.â Mrs. Allan was visiting in Avonlea, for the first time since leaving it. She was as gay and sweet and sympathetic as ever. Her old girl friends had welcomed her back rapturously. The reigning ministerâs wife was an estimable lady, but she was not exactly a kindred spirit. âI can hardly wait till he gets old enough to talk,â sighed Diana. âI just long to hear him say âmother.â And oh, Iâm determined that his first memory of me shall be a nice one. The first memory I have of my mother is of her slapping me for something I had done. I am sure I deserved it, and mother was always a good mother and I love her dearly. But I do wish my first memory of her was nicer.â âI have just one memory of my mother and it is the sweetest of all my memories,â said Mrs. Allan. âI was five years old, and I had been allowed to go to school one day with my two older sisters. When school came out my sisters went home in different groups, each supposing I was with the other. Instead I had run off with a little girl I had played with at recess. We went to her home, which was near the school, and began making mud pies. We were having a glorious time when my older sister arrived, breathless and angry. ââYou naughty girlâ she cried, snatching my reluctant hand and dragging me along with her. âCome home this minute. Oh, youâre going to catch it! Mother is awful cross. She is going to give you a good whipping.â âI had never been whipped. Dread and terror filled my poor little heart. I have never been so miserable in my life as I was on that walk home. I had not meant to be naughty. Phemy Cameron had asked me to go home with her and I had not known it was wrong to go. And now I was to be whipped for it. When we got home my sister dragged me into the kitchen where mother was sitting by the fire in the twilight. My poor wee legs were trembling so that I could hardly stand. And motherâmother just took me up in her arms, without one word of rebuke or harshness, kissed me and held me close to her heart. âI was so frightened you were lost, darling,â she said tenderly. I could see the love shining in her eyes as she looked down on me. She never scolded or reproached me for what I had doneâonly told me I must never go away again without asking permission. She died very soon afterwards. That is the only memory I have of her. Isnât it a beautiful one?â Anne felt lonelier than ever as she walked home, going by way of the Birch Path and Willowmere. She had not walked that way for many moons. It was a darkly-purple bloomy night. The air was heavy with blossom fragranceâalmost too heavy. The cloyed senses recoiled from it as from an overfull cup. The birches of the path had grown from the fairy saplings of old to big trees. Everything had changed. Anne felt that she would be glad when the summer was over and she was away at work again. Perhaps life would not seem so empty then. ââIâve tried the worldâit wears no more The coloring of romance it wore,ââ sighed Anneâand was straightway much comforted by the romance in the idea of the world being denuded of romance! Chapter 40. A Book of Revelation. The Irvings came back to Echo Lodge for the summer, and Anne spent a happy three weeks there in July. Miss Lavendar had not changed; Charlotta the Fourth was a very grown-up young lady now, but still adored Anne sincerely. âWhen allâs said and done, Miss Shirley, maâam, I havenât seen any one in Boston thatâs equal to you,â she said frankly. Paul was almost grown up, too. He was sixteen, his chestnut curls had given place to close-cropped brown locks, and he was more interested in football than fairies. But the bond between him and his old teacher still held. Kindred spirits alone do not change with changing years. It was a wet, bleak, cruel evening in July when Anne came back to Green Gables. One of the fierce summer storms which sometimes sweep over the gulf was ravaging the sea. As Anne came in the first raindrops dashed against the panes. âWas that Paul who brought you home?â asked Marilla. âWhy didnât you make him stay all night. Itâs going to be a wild evening.â âHeâll reach Echo Lodge before the rain gets very heavy, I think. Anyway, he wanted to go back tonight. Well, Iâve had a splendid visit, but Iâm glad to see you dear folks again. âEast, west, hameâs best.â Davy, have you been growing again lately?â âIâve growed a whole inch since you left,â said Davy proudly. âIâm as tall as Milty Boulter now. Ainât I glad. Heâll have to stop crowing about being bigger. Say, Anne, did you know that Gilbert Blythe is dying?â Anne stood quite silent and motionless, looking at Davy. Her face had gone so white that Marilla thought she was going to faint. âDavy, hold your tongue,â said Mrs. Rachel angrily. âAnne, donât look like thatâ_donât look like that!_ We didnât mean to tell you so suddenly.â âIsâitâtrue?â asked Anne in a voice that was not hers. âGilbert is very ill,â said Mrs. Lynde gravely. âHe took down with typhoid fever just after you left for Echo Lodge. Did you never hear of it?â âNo,â said that unknown voice. âIt was a very bad case from the start. The doctor said heâd been terribly run down. Theyâve a trained nurse and everythingâs been done. _donât_ look like that, Anne. While thereâs life thereâs hope.â âMr. Harrison was here this evening and he said they had no hope of him,â reiterated Davy. Marilla, looking old and worn and tired, got up and marched Davy grimly out of the kitchen. âOh, _donât_ look so, dear,â said Mrs. Rachel, putting her kind old arms about the pallid girl. âI havenât given up hope, indeed I havenât. Heâs got the Blythe constitution in his favor, thatâs what.â Anne gently put Mrs. Lyndeâs arms away from her, walked blindly across the kitchen, through the hall, up the stairs to her old room. At its window she knelt down, staring out unseeingly. It was very dark. The rain was beating down over the shivering fields. The Haunted Woods was full of the groans of mighty trees wrung in the tempest, and the air throbbed with the thunderous crash of billows on the distant shore. And Gilbert was dying! There is a book of Revelation in every oneâs life, as there is in the Bible. Anne read hers that bitter night, as she kept her agonized vigil through the hours of storm and darkness. She loved Gilbertâhad always loved him! She knew that now. She knew that she could no more cast him out of her life without agony than she could have cut off her right hand and cast it from her. And the knowledge had come too lateâtoo late even for the bitter solace of being with him at the last. If she had not been so blindâso foolishâshe would have had the right to go to him now. But he would never know that she loved himâhe would go away from this life thinking that she did not care. Oh, the black years of emptiness stretching before her! She could not live through themâshe could not! She cowered down by her window and wished, for the first time in her gay young life, that she could die, too. If Gilbert went away from her, without one word or sign or message, she could not live. Nothing was of any value without him. She belonged to him and he to her. In her hour of supreme agony she had no doubt of that. He did not love Christine Stuartânever had loved Christine Stuart. Oh, what a fool she had been not to realize what the bond was that had held her to Gilbertâto think that the flattered fancy she had felt for Roy Gardner had been love. And now she must pay for her folly as for a crime. Mrs. Lynde and Marilla crept to her door before they went to bed, shook their heads doubtfully at each other over the silence, and went away. The storm raged all night, but when the dawn came it was spent. Anne saw a fairy fringe of light on the skirts of darkness. Soon the eastern hilltops had a fire-shot ruby rim. The clouds rolled themselves away into great, soft, white masses on the horizon; the sky gleamed blue and silvery. A hush fell over the world. Anne rose from her knees and crept downstairs. The freshness of the rain-wind blew against her white face as she went out into the yard, and cooled her dry, burning eyes. A merry rollicking whistle was lilting up the lane. A moment later Pacifique Buote came in sight. Anneâs physical strength suddenly failed her. If she had not clutched at a low willow bough she would have fallen. Pacifique was George Fletcherâs hired man, and George Fletcher lived next door to the Blythes. Mrs. Fletcher was Gilbertâs aunt. Pacifique would know ifâifâPacifique would know what there was to be known. Pacifique strode sturdily on along the red lane, whistling. He did not see Anne. She made three futile attempts to call him. He was almost past before she succeeded in making her quivering lips call, âPacifique!â Pacifique turned with a grin and a cheerful good morning. âPacifique,â said Anne faintly, âdid you come from George Fletcherâs this morning?â âSure,â said Pacifique amiably. âI got de word lasâ night dat my fader, he was seeck. It was so stormy dat I couldnât go den, so I start vair early dis morninâ. Iâm goinâ troo de woods for short cut.â âDid you hear how Gilbert Blythe was this morning?â Anneâs desperation drove her to the question. Even the worst would be more endurable than this hideous suspense. âHeâs better,â said Pacifique. âHe got de turn lasâ night. De doctor say heâll be all right now dis soon while. Had close shave, dough! Dat boy, he jusâ keel himself at college. Well, I musâ hurry. De old man, heâll be in hurry to see me.â Pacifique resumed his walk and his whistle. Anne gazed after him with eyes where joy was driving out the strained anguish of the night. He was a very lank, very ragged, very homely youth. But in her sight he was as beautiful as those who bring good tidings on the mountains. Never, as long as she lived, would Anne see Pacifiqueâs brown, round, black-eyed face without a warm remembrance of the moment when he had given to her the oil of joy for mourning. Long after Pacifiqueâs gay whistle had faded into the phantom of music and then into silence far up under the maples of Loverâs Lane Anne stood under the willows, tasting the poignant sweetness of life when some great dread has been removed from it. The morning was a cup filled with mist and glamor. In the corner near her was a rich surprise of new-blown, crystal-dewed roses. The trills and trickles of song from the birds in the big tree above her seemed in perfect accord with her mood. A sentence from a very old, very true, very wonderful Book came to her lips, âWeeping may endure for a night but joy cometh in the morning.â Chapter 41. Love Takes Up the Glass of Time. âIâve come up to ask you to go for one of our old-time rambles through September woods and âover hills where spices grow,â this afternoon,â said Gilbert, coming suddenly around the porch corner. âSuppose we visit Hester Grayâs garden.â Anne, sitting on the stone step with her lap full of a pale, filmy, green stuff, looked up rather blankly. âOh, I wish I could,â she said slowly, âbut I really canât, Gilbert. Iâm going to Alice Penhallowâs wedding this evening, you know. Iâve got to do something to this dress, and by the time itâs finished Iâll have to get ready. Iâm so sorry. Iâd love to go.â âWell, can you go tomorrow afternoon, then?â asked Gilbert, apparently not much disappointed. âYes, I think so.â âIn that case I shall hie me home at once to do something I should otherwise have to do tomorrow. So Alice Penhallow is to be married tonight. Three weddings for you in one summer, AnneâPhilâs, Aliceâs, and Janeâs. Iâll never forgive Jane for not inviting me to her wedding.â âYou really canât blame her when you think of the tremendous Andrews connection who had to be invited. The house could hardly hold them all. I was only bidden by grace of being Janeâs old chumâat least on Janeâs part. I think Mrs. Harmonâs motive for inviting me was to let me see Janeâs surpassing gorgeousness.â âIs it true that she wore so many diamonds that you couldnât tell where the diamonds left off and Jane began?â Anne laughed. âShe certainly wore a good many. What with all the diamonds and white satin and tulle and lace and roses and orange blossoms, prim little Jane was almost lost to sight. But she was _very_ happy, and so was Mr. Inglisâand so was Mrs. Harmon.â âIs that the dress youâre going to wear tonight?â asked Gilbert, looking down at the fluffs and frills. âYes. Isnât it pretty? And I shall wear starflowers in my hair. The Haunted Wood is full of them this summer.â Gilbert had a sudden vision of Anne, arrayed in a frilly green gown, with the virginal curves of arms and throat slipping out of it, and white stars shining against the coils of her ruddy hair. The vision made him catch his breath. But he turned lightly away. âWell, Iâll be up tomorrow. Hope youâll have a nice time tonight.â Anne looked after him as he strode away, and sighed. Gilbert was friendlyâvery friendlyâfar too friendly. He had come quite often to Green Gables after his recovery, and something of their old comradeship had returned. But Anne no longer found it satisfying. The rose of love made the blossom of friendship pale and scentless by contrast. And Anne had again begun to doubt if Gilbert now felt anything for her but friendship. In the common light of common day her radiant certainty of that rapt morning had faded. She was haunted by a miserable fear that her mistake could never be rectified. It was quite likely that it was Christine whom Gilbert loved after all. Perhaps he was even engaged to her. Anne tried to put all unsettling hopes out of her heart, and reconcile herself to a future where work and ambition must take the place of love. She could do good, if not noble, work as a teacher; and the success her little sketches were beginning to meet with in certain editorial sanctums augured well for her budding literary dreams. ButâbutâAnne picked up her green dress and sighed again. When Gilbert came the next afternoon he found Anne waiting for him, fresh as the dawn and fair as a star, after all the gaiety of the preceding night. She wore a green dressânot the one she had worn to the wedding, but an old one which Gilbert had told her at a Redmond reception he liked especially. It was just the shade of green that brought out the rich tints of her hair, and the starry gray of her eyes and the iris-like delicacy of her skin. Gilbert, glancing at her sideways as they walked along a shadowy woodpath, thought she had never looked so lovely. Anne, glancing sideways at Gilbert, now and then, thought how much older he looked since his illness. It was as if he had put boyhood behind him forever. The day was beautiful and the way was beautiful. Anne was almost sorry when they reached Hester Grayâs garden, and sat down on the old bench. But it was beautiful there, tooâas beautiful as it had been on the faraway day of the Golden Picnic, when Diana and Jane and Priscilla and she had found it. Then it had been lovely with narcissus and violets; now golden rod had kindled its fairy torches in the corners and asters dotted it bluely. The call of the brook came up through the woods from the valley of birches with all its old allurement; the mellow air was full of the purr of the sea; beyond were fields rimmed by fences bleached silvery gray in the suns of many summers, and long hills scarfed with the shadows of autumnal clouds; with the blowing of the west wind old dreams returned. âI think,â said Anne softly, âthat âthe land where dreams come trueâ is in the blue haze yonder, over that little valley.â âHave you any unfulfilled dreams, Anne?â asked Gilbert. Something in his toneâsomething she had not heard since that miserable evening in the orchard at Pattyâs Placeâmade Anneâs heart beat wildly. But she made answer lightly. âOf course. Everybody has. It wouldnât do for us to have all our dreams fulfilled. We would be as good as dead if we had nothing left to dream about. What a delicious aroma that low-descending sun is extracting from the asters and ferns. I wish we could see perfumes as well as smell them. Iâm sure they would be very beautiful. â Gilbert was not to be thus sidetracked. âI have a dream,â he said slowly. âI persist in dreaming it, although it has often seemed to me that it could never come true. I dream of a home with a hearth-fire in it, a cat and dog, the footsteps of friendsâand _you!_â Anne wanted to speak but she could find no words. Happiness was breaking over her like a wave. It almost frightened her. âI asked you a question over two years ago, Anne. If I ask it again today will you give me a different answer?â Still Anne could not speak. But she lifted her eyes, shining with all the love-rapture of countless generations, and looked into his for a moment. He wanted no other answer. They lingered in the old garden until twilight, sweet as dusk in Eden must have been, crept over it. There was so much to talk over and recallâthings said and done and heard and thought and felt and misunderstood. âI thought you loved Christine Stuart,â Anne told him, as reproachfully as if she had not given him every reason to suppose that she loved Roy Gardner. Gilbert laughed boyishly. âChristine was engaged to somebody in her home town. I knew it and she knew I knew it. When her brother graduated he told me his sister was coming to Kingsport the next winter to take music, and asked me if I would look after her a bit, as she knew no one and would be very lonely. So I did. And then I liked Christine for her own sake. She is one of the nicest girls Iâve ever known. I knew college gossip credited us with being in love with each other. I didnât care. Nothing mattered much to me for a time there, after you told me you could never love me, Anne. There was nobody elseâthere never could be anybody else for me but you. Iâve loved you ever since that day you broke your slate over my head in school.â âI donât see how you could keep on loving me when I was such a little fool,â said Anne. âWell, I tried to stop,â said Gilbert frankly, ânot because I thought you what you call yourself, but because I felt sure there was no chance for me after Gardner came on the scene. But I couldnâtâand I canât tell you, either, what itâs meant to me these two years to believe you were going to marry him, and be told every week by some busybody that your engagement was on the point of being announced. I believed it until one blessed day when I was sitting up after the fever. I got a letter from Phil GordonâPhil Blake, ratherâin which she told me there was really nothing between you and Roy, and advised me to âtry again.â Well, the doctor was amazed at my rapid recovery after that.â Anne laughedâthen shivered. âI can never forget the night I thought you were dying, Gilbert. Oh, I knewâI _knew_ thenâand I thought it was too late.â âBut it wasnât, sweetheart. Oh, Anne, this makes up for everything, doesnât it? Letâs resolve to keep this day sacred to perfect beauty all our lives for the gift it has given us.â âItâs the birthday of our happiness,â said Anne softly. âIâve always loved this old garden of Hester Grayâs, and now it will be dearer than ever.â âBut Iâll have to ask you to wait a long time, Anne,â said Gilbert sadly. âIt will be three years before Iâll finish my medical course. And even then there will be no diamond sunbursts and marble halls.â Anne laughed. âI donât want sunbursts and marble halls. I just want _you_. You see Iâm quite as shameless as Phil about it. Sunbursts and marble halls may be all very well, but there is more âscope for imaginationâ without them. And as for the waiting, that doesnât matter. Weâll just be happy, waiting and working for each otherâand dreaming. Oh, dreams will be very sweet now.â Gilbert drew her close to him and kissed her. Then they walked home together in the dusk, crowned king and queen in the bridal realm of love, along winding paths fringed with the sweetest flowers that ever bloomed, and over haunted meadows where winds of hope and memory blew. Thank you for joining us on this delightful journey through Anne of the Island. We hope you enjoyed Anneâs adventures and the many moments of joy, growth, and heartache she experienced. If you loved this story, donât forget to like, comment, and subscribe to Storytime Haven for more literary adventures. Until next time, keep dreaming and reading.
Join Anne Shirley in her enchanting journey as she navigates through new beginnings, unforgettable friendships, and her evolving dreams at Redmond College. đ Anne of the Island by L. M. Montgomery is a captivating story of love, self-discovery, and the challenges of growing up. đ⨠In this timeless classic, Anne faces new challenges and joys while she learns the true meaning of home, love, and the importance of finding her own path. đš
đ **About the Story** đ
Anne of the Island is the third book in the beloved Anne series. In this heartwarming continuation, Anne Shirley leaves her peaceful home in Avonlea to pursue her studies at Redmond College. đş Here, she meets a variety of characters, makes lifelong friends, and faces the trials and tribulations of young adulthood. đ Anne’s witty, imaginative, and strong-willed nature shines through as she navigates love, friendship, and the personal struggles that come with growing up. đŤ
As Anne grows and matures, she encounters the challenges of balancing her dreams with the realities of life. From her blossoming friendship with Priscilla Grant to her eventual romantic journey, Anne learns about heartache, love, and finding her true self. đˇ Anne’s growth through the ups and downs of life offers powerful lessons about the importance of following one’s heart and embracing new experiences. đ
⨠**What You’ll Experience in this Video** â¨
– A timeless tale of adventure, friendship, and romance. đ
– Insights into Anne’s character development and relationships. đż
– A nostalgic look at Anneâs college days and the unforgettable moments that shape her future. đ
– An inspiring journey that will resonate with readers of all ages. đť
⨠**Why You Should Watch** â¨
– Relive the magic of Anne Shirley’s story with a fresh perspective. đŹ
– Immerse yourself in the beautiful world of Anne of the Island, filled with heartwarming moments. đ
– Get inspired by Anneâs adventures and growth as she faces lifeâs challenges. đš
đ **Subscribe for More Timeless Stories!** đ
Don’t forget to subscribe to **[Storytime Haven](https://bit.ly/StorytimeHavenOfficial)** for more literary classics, heartfelt tales, and enchanting adventures! đ⨠Stay updated and be part of our growing community of book lovers! đđŹ
-No Hero by E. W. Hornung đđڏââď¸ A Tale of Intrigue and Courage (https://youtu.be/jwGIPs1JMrA)
-The Diamond Pin đđľď¸ââď¸ | A Classic Mystery by Carolyn Wells (https://youtu.be/_TqY4eHBrp0)
-The Great Diamond Syndicate đ | The Hardest Crew on Record đľď¸ââď¸ | Nicholas Carter (https://youtu.be/Ev9gYouUU1w)
-Sea Mew Abbey đđ° | Mysterious Gothic Tale by Florence Warden (https://youtu.be/CpxwgYUXDAo)
-The Mystery Crash đŠď¸đĽ | A Thrilling Adventure by Van Powell (https://youtu.be/r7Ni51Mlxl4)
-Minute Mysteries [Detectograms] đľď¸ââď¸đľď¸ââď¸ | Solve the Crime Before the Detective Does! đ (https://youtu.be/mcEEjb4gkYM)
-The Loudwater Tragedy đđ | A Gripping Tale of Mystery & Suspense by T. W. Speight (https://youtu.be/jz4QAT6GcrQ)
-Crime and Punishment âď¸đ (https://youtu.be/3Poxm5e13E0)
-The Broken Thread đđ – A Gripping Mystery by William Le Queux (https://youtu.be/BWqDWK2rkcg)
-Anne of the Island đ¸ | A Heartwarming Tale of Friendship, Love & Growth đż (https://youtu.be/CwVeg0fCztY)
**Hashtags**:
#AnneOfTheIsland #LMMontgomery #AnneShirley #AnneOfGreenGables #BookLovers #ClassicLiterature #TimelessTales #LoveAndFriendship #ComingOfAge #RedmondCollege #AnneShirleyFan #LiteratureLovers #BooksToRead #YoungAdultFiction #RomanticTales #SelfDiscovery #AnneSeries #Storytime #HeartwarmingStories #ClassicBooks #LiteraryClassics #FriendshipGoals #LoveStory #CollegeLife #AnneOfGreenGablesSeries #AnneOfTheIslandStory #AnneShirleyQuotes #GrowingUp #AdventureAndLove
1 Comment
đ§ Enjoying the audiobook? đ Please like, share, subscribe and comment! đâ¨